Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n member_n particular_a schism_n 2,767 5 10.0659 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27363 The Notes of the church as laid down by Cardinal Bellarmin examined and confuted : with a table of contents. Sherlock, William, 1641?-1707. 1688 (1688) Wing B1823; ESTC R32229 267,792 461

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o lay_v down_o by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n examine_v and_o confute_v with_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 6._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxxviii_o the_o several_a tract_n contain_v in_o this_o volume_n 1._o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n 2._o a_o examination_n of_o note_n concern_v bellarmin_n first_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n 3._o his_o second_o note_n antiquity_n 4._o his_o third_z note_n duration_n 5._o his_o four_o note_n amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n 6._o his_o fifth_z note_n the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n 7._o his_o sixth_z note_n agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n 8._o his_o seven_o note_n union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n 9_o his_o eight_o note_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n 10._o his_o nine_o note_n efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n 11._o his_o ten_o note_n holiness_n of_o life_n 12._o his_o eleven_o note_n the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n 13._o his_o twelve_o note_n the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n 14._o his_o thirteen_o note_n confession_n of_o adversary_n 15._o his_o fourteen_o note_n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n 16._o his_o fifteen_o note_n temporal_a felicity_n 17._o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v the_o use_n and_o great_a moment_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o deliver_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n the_o notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la justify_v 18._o a_o defence_n of_o the_o confuter_n of_o bellarmin_n second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n antiquity_n against_o the_o cavil_n of_o the_o adviser_n 19_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n the_o content_n of_o the_o follow_a note_n the_o introduction_n to_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o visibility_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n take_v away_o the_o necessity_n of_o find_v out_o note_n to_o distinguish_v it_o by_o especial_o of_o such_o note_n as_o be_v matter_n of_o dispute_v themselves_o p._n 3._o the_o use_n of_o note_n of_o find_v out_o a_o infallible_a church_n and_o these_o appropriate_v by_o the_o cardinal_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o p._n 4._o what_o protestant_n intend_v in_o those_o note_n they_o give_v of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o what_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o note_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 5._o the_o protestant_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 6._o three_o thing_n object_v to_o this_o by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o answer_v return_v p._n 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o the_o cardinal_n way_n consider_v and_o examine_v one_a to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v p._n 13._o two_o inquiry_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o and_o what_o it_o be_v ibid._n no_o note_n of_o these_o but_o such_o as_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v viz._n the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o every_o man_n be_v private_a judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o they_o p._n 14._o 2_o she_o give_v we_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v p._n 15._o impossible_a to_o know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v ibid._n no_o other_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n and_o that_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o what_o all_o church_n do_v agree_v in_o viz_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n p._n 16._o the_o 6_o which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o second_o and_o the_o 8_o be_v the_o chief_a if_o not_o the_o only_a note_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o here_o our_o claim_n be_v as_o good_a if_o not_o better_a than_o they_o ibid._n his_o 9th_o 10_o 11_o and_o 12_o not_o proper_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n which_o be_v profess_v by_o all_o true_a church_n ibid._n the_o 13_o 14_o 15_o no_o note_n at_o all_o because_o they_o be_v not_o always_o true_a ibid._n his_o 3d_o and_o four_o note_n be_v not_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o only_o god_n promise_n make_v to_o his_o church_n p._n 17._o his_o one_a note_n do_v not_o declare_v what_o a_o church_n be_v but_o in_o what_o communion_n it_o be_v and_o be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v frr_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v true_a church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o ibid._n his_o 5_o common_a to_o the_o greek_a and_o any_o other_o church_n who_o have_v bishop_n in_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a bishop_n p._n 18._o the_o seven_o note_n serve_v to_o purpose_v the_o cardinal_n design_n and_o do_v his_o business_n without_o any_o other_o note_n ibid._n 3_o another_o mystery_n in_o form_v these_o note_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o as_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a or_o vncatholick_a church_n who_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o this_o one_o catholic_n church_n p._n 19_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o signify_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n but_o some_o one_o church_n which_o all_o other_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o and_o communicate_v with_o if_o they_o will_v be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v give_v we_o these_o note_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 20_o 21._o 4thly_a another_o design_n in_o make_v these_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n even_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o p._n 22._o but_o here_o we_o must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v infallible_a this_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o scripture_n which_o a_o man_n must_v first_o believe_v before_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n p._n 23._o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o first_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o religion_n since_o we_o ought_v to_o know_v and_o believe_v most_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n or_o no._n p._n 23_o 24._o the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o note_n catholic_n the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a and_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n p._n 25._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decline_v be_v examine_v by_o this_o rule_n p._n 26._o bellarmin_n argument_n for_o the_o name_n catholic_n be_v a_o undoubted_a true_a mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 26._o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n expose_v in_o three_o particular_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o will_v ever_o be_v a_o stand_a note_n of_o it_o p._n 27._o this_o show_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o therefore_o in_o their_o time_n be_v join_v with_o the_o word_n catholic_n p._n 28._o what_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o why_o call_v catholic_n ibid._n none_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n go_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith._n p._n 29._o ii_o no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n p._n 29._o i._o the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o know_v by_o the_o name_n catholic_n at_o the_o beginning_n though_o of_o a_o ancient_a and_o early_a date_n and_o therefore_o no_o essential_a note_n of_o it_o p._n 30._o 2._o name_n be_v oft_o time_n arbitrary_a and_o at_o random_n and_o false_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o they_o ibid._n 3._o name_n be_v oft_o time_n impose_v on_o
of_o caesaria_n of_o anthony_n a_o egyptian_a monk_n of_o john_n a_o anchorite_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o his_o purpose_n p._n 296._o neither_o be_v the_o testimony_n concern_v st._n benedict_n st._n bernard_n and_o st._n francis._n p._n 297_o 298._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o prediction_n &_o prophecy_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v pretend_v to_o few_o such_o p._n 299_o to_o 302._o the_o prediction_n of_o philip_n nereus_n and_o of_o st._n rose_n p._n 303._o of_o hieronimus_fw-la savanorola_n p._n 304._o of_o johannes_n de_fw-fr rupe_n scissa_fw-la p._n 305._o of_o luther_n and_o melancthon_n and_o john_n huss_n p._n 306_o 307._o the_o thirteen_o note_n the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n the_o cardinal_n roundly_o affirm_v the_o force_n of_o their_o truth_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o enemy_n of_o it_o be_v constrain_v to_o bear_v witness_n to_o it_o p._n 309._o i._o whether_o such_o a_o testimony_n be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o because_o the_o church_n may_v be_v and_o be_v without_o it_o in_o its_o infancy_n the_o christian_a religion_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o its_o adversary_n p._n 310_o 311._o our_o saviour_n rather_o make_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o contrary_a so_o do_v tertullian_n and_o other_o p._n 312._o ii_o if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a note_n whether_o peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n exclusive_o to_o other_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n p._n 313._o the_o witness_n he_o produce_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n pliny_n testimony_n be_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o general_a and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v as_o to_o what_o he_o mention_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o christian_a soldier_n p._n 314_o 315._o josephus_n his_o testimony_n make_v as_o little_a for_o he_o or_o his_o church_n p._n 316._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o advantage_n arise_v to_o they_o from_o that_o of_o philo_n the_o jew_n p._n 317._o his_o other_o witness_n both_o turk_n and_o heretic_n trifle_v and_o insignificant_a p._n 318._o the_o cardinal_n affirm_v that_o whereas_o the_o catholic_n neither_o praise_n or_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n or_o life_n of_o heathen_n or_o heretic_n yet_o these_o speak_v well_o of_o they_o p._n 319._o vncharitableness_n a_o true_a character_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ibid._n catholic_n have_v commend_v the_o life_n both_o of_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n p._n 320._o and_o also_o our_o doctrine_n p._n 321_o to_o 324._o slater_n consensus_fw-la veterum_fw-la reflect_v on_o ibid._n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o jew_n how_o far_o useful_a to_o christianity_n p._n 324._o the_o jew_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n confess_v there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o jesus_n who_o wrought_v wonderful_a work_n ibid._n their_o testimony_n as_o to_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o as_o to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o text_n appropriate_v to_o the_o messiah_n p._n 325._o mr._n slater_n ignorance_n of_o the_o jewish_a writer_n discover_v from_o p._n 326_o to_o 330._o the_o jewish_a writer_n great_a enemy_n to_o the_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n p._n 133._o the_o fourteen_o note_n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n what_o bellamine_n mean_v by_o a_o unhappy_a end_n p._n 335._o this_o intend_v by_o he_o not_o bare_o as_o a_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n p._n 336._o the_o instance_n he_o produce_v of_o unhappy_a death_n be_v for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o impertinent_a ibid._n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o who_o defend_v it_o must_v be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n if_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true._n p._n 337._o from_o god_n judgement_n against_o particular_a person_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v against_o that_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n ibid._n this_o therefore_o no_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o be_v contrary_a 1._o to_o scripture_n p._n 338_o 339._o 2._o to_o daily_a observation_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o forego_n age_n p._n 340_o 341._o 3._o to_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n p._n 342._o this_o prove_v in_o five_o particular_n p._n 342_o 343_o 344._o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o protestant_n will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 344._o this_o will_v be_v evident_a by_o compare_v the_o death_n of_o their_o prime_a member_n and_o zealous_a champion_n and_o then_o consider_v on_o which_o side_n we_o find_v the_o great_a number_n of_o such_o as_o be_v unnatural_a and_o not_o common_a to_o man_n p._n 345._o protestant_n bishop_n and_o other_o eminent_a pastor_n among_o they_o without_o number_n have_v die_v the_o most_o happy_a death_n ibid._n the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o have_v meet_v with_o unhappy_a end_n very_o few_o p._n 346._o five_o only_o mention_v by_o our_o adversary_n luther_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n carolostadius_fw-la and_o calvin_n ibid._n the_o death_n of_o luther_n misrepresent_v by_o they_o p._n 347._o sleidans_fw-la account_n of_o it_o and_o father_n paul_n thuanus_n quite_o different_a from_o that_o of_o his_o bitter_a enemy_n p._n 348_o 349._o zuinglius_fw-la his_o death_n another_o instance_n of_o bellarmine_n p._n 350._o oecolampadius_n his_o death_n false_o relate_v by_o the_o cardinal_n ibid._n and_o carolostadius_fw-la his_o being_n kill_v by_o the_o devil_n expose_v as_o a_o notorious_a forgery_n by_o petrus_n roquinus_n p._n 351._o the_o story_n of_o calvin_n death_n large_o consider_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v so_o lewd_a a_o calumny_n that_o any_o man_n but_o a_o advocate_n for_o their_o church_n may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o own_v it_o p._n 351_o to_o 359._o no_o mention_n make_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o any_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o prince_n and_o secular_a power_n who_o have_v be_v great_a defender_n of_o the_o protestant_n faith._n p._n 360._o several_a dismal_a end_n of_o cardinal_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o especial_o of_o their_o pope_n p._n 360_o 361_o 362._o the_o unhappy_a death_n of_o several_a of_o their_o prince_n particular_o five_a successive_o together_o in_o france_n p._n 363._o the_o advantage_n therefore_o on_o this_o account_n on_o the_o protestant_a side_n ibid._n conclusion_n the_o fifteen_o note_n temporal_a felicity_n this_o note_n even_o in_o the_o cardinal_n opinion_n liable_a to_o many_o exception_n and_o therefore_o at_o once_o to_o prevent_v they_o all_o he_o tell_v we_o roundly_o that_o catholic_n prince_n never_o adhere_v unto_o god_n hearty_o but_o that_o they_o most_o easy_o triumph_v over_o their_o enemy_n p._n 368._o i._o this_o can_v be_v esteem_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o because_o god_n have_v no_o where_o promise_v it_o in_o all_o the_o holy_a gospel_n p._n 369._o 2._o because_o for_o several_a age_n together_o the_o church_n can_v not_o pretend_v to_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o temporal_a felicity_n p._n 370._o 3._o because_o of_o those_o misery_n which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n must_v endure_v in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n p._n 371._o ii_o the_o historical_a passage_n which_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v for_o this_o note_n do_v not_o prove_v what_o he_o intend_v p._n 372._o great_a partiality_n make_v use_v of_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o these_o instance_n p._n 373._o the_o story_n of_o rhadagaisus_n and_o his_o son_n death_n the_o defeat_n of_o the_o numerous_a army_n of_o the_o goth_n by_o honorius_n consider_v ibid._n the_o various_a success_n of_o the_o holy-war_n do_v at_o last_o conclude_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o infidel_n p._n 374._o the_o story_n of_o the_o albigenses_n and_o the_o success_n of_o both_o side_n impartial_o relate_v wherein_o these_o heretic_n seem_v clear_o to_o have_v the_o advantage_n p._n 375_o 376_o 377._o the_o victory_n of_o charles_n the_o v._o no_o such_o mighty_a miracle_n as_o pretend_v p._n 378._o many_o example_n of_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n allege_v who_o have_v be_v as_o prosperous_a and_o successful_a in_o the_o world_n as_o any_o catholic_n can_v pretend_v to_o p._n 379._o the_o history_n of_o uladislaus_n king_n of_o poland_n and_o hungary_n upon_o his_o rapture_n of_o the_o peace_n with_o amurath_n the_o second_o p._n 380._o the_o unfortunate_a battle_n of_o mohatz_n relate_v p._n 381._o the_o prosperous_a reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o attempt_n both_o of_o foreign_a and_o domestic_a enemy_n p._n 381._o to_o 387._o the_o author_n of_o the_o use_n and_o great_a moment_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n reflect_v upon_o p._n 388._o 389._o the_o recapitulation_n and_o conclusion_n to_o the_o
one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o only_a catholic_n church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o church_n as_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a or_o uncatholick_a church_n who_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o this_o one_o catholic_n church_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o intent_n of_o it_o what_o will_v all_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n signify_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_n church_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v this_o the_o cardinal_n have_v lose_v his_o labour_n for_o though_o the_o note_n he_o assign_v be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n yet_o they_o may_v and_o must_v belong_v to_o all_o other_o true_a church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n or_o but_o one_o church_n which_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o the_o only_a principle_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_n unity_n and_o this_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v prove_v first_o before_o he_o have_v think_v of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v here_o before_o we_o be_v ready_a for_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o though_o we_o all_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n yet_o we_o say_v there_o may_v be_v and_o hope_v nay_o more_o than_o so_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o true_a church_n which_o make_v up_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o before_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n can_v do_v any_o service_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o than_o it_o will_v signify_v something_o to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v that_o true_a church_n they_o must_v prove_v also_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o signify_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o some_o one_o church_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o catholic_n unity_n which_o all_o other_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o and_o communicate_v with_o if_o they_o will_v be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o though_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v in_o subjection_n to_o that_o church_n yet_o they_o receive_v their_o catholicism_n from_o their_o communion_n with_o that_o church_n and_o therefore_o that_o only_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v not_o mere_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o church_n together_o which_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o subjection_n of_o all_o church_n to_o that_o one_o catholic_n church_n which_o make_v they_o catholic_n so_o that_o they_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v one_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v that_o a_o part_n be_v the_o whole_a that_o one_o particular_a church_n be_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n for_o so_o the_o catholic_n church_n signify_v in_o ancient_a writer_n this_o be_v so_o absurd_a that_o some_o of_o our_o modern_a advocate_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o rome_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o all_o those_o church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o suppose_v this_o yet_o it_o be_v only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o make_v all_o the_o other_o church_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o she_o only_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o i_o will_v present_o make_v they_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o let_v we_o suppose_v that_o no_o other_o church_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n will_v she_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n or_o not_o if_o notwithstanding_o this_o she_o will_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n than_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o make_v the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o catholic_n church_n if_o she_o will_v not_o than_o i_o can_v see_v how_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o catholic_n church_n these_o thing_n i_o say_v aught_o to_o have_v be_v prove_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v give_v we_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o prove_v by_o note_n that_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a catholic_n church_n till_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n or_o that_o there_o be_v one_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n this_o he_o know_v we_o all_o deny_v and_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o think_v to_o convince_v we_o by_o note_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o particular_a catholic_n church_n when_o we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o church_n and_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o own_v it_o as_o great_a a_o contradiction_n as_o it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n 4thly_a but_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o far_a design_n of_o these_o note-makers_n to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n even_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o it_o make_v i_o now_o admire_v that_o they_o shall_v think_v this_o can_v be_v do_v by_o some_o note_n of_o a_o church_n especial_o by_o such_o note_n as_o the_o cardinal_n give_v we_o for_o suppose_v he_o have_v give_v we_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o utmost_a he_o can_v pretend_v to_o before_o we_o can_v hence_o conclude_v that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o infallible_a guide_n and_o uncontrollable_a judge_n of_o controversy_n we_o must_v be_v satisfy_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v infallible_a this_o indeed_o bellarmin_n attempt_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v not_o my_o concern_v at_o present_a to_o inquire_v how_o he_o prove_v it_o but_o i_o be_o sure_a this_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o scripture_n for_o unless_o christ_n have_v bestow_v infallibility_n on_o the_o church_n i_o know_v not_o how_o we_o can_v prove_v she_o have_v it_o and_o whether_o christ_n have_v do_v it_o or_o not_o can_v never_o be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o a_o man_n must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o use_v his_o own_o judgement_n to_o understand_v they_o before_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n and_o therefore_o those_o who_o resolve_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v without_o great_a impudence_n urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o yet_o thus_o they_o all_o do_v nay_o prove_v their_o very_a note_n of_o the_o church_n from_o scripture_n as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v and_o think_v this_o be_v no_o circle_n neither_o because_o we_o heretic_n believe_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n and_o therefore_o be_v willing_a to_o dispute_v with_o they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v a_o fault_n on_o our_o side_n and_o when_o we_o dispute_v with_o they_o whatever_o we_o do_v at_o other_o time_n we_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n till_o they_o have_v prove_v they_o to_o we_o their_o way_n by_o the_o authority_n or_o their_o church_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v quick_o see_v what_o bless_a work_n they_o will_v make_v of_o it_o how_o they_o will_v prove_v their_o church_n infallibility_n and_o what_o fine_a note_n we_o shall_v have_v of_o a_o church_n when_o we_o have_v reject_v all_o their_o scripture-proof_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v till_o they_o have_v first_o satisfy_v we_o that_o they_o be_v the_o only_a true_a infallible_a church_n upon_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o every_o thing_n else_o i_o confess_v i_o will_v glad_o hear_v what_o note_n they_o will_v give_v a_o pagan_a to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a infallible_a church_n by_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o most_o senseless_a thing_n to_o resolve_v all_o our_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o first_o object_n or_o our_o faith_n in_o religion_n whereas_o it_o be_v demonstrable_a that_o we_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v most_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n or_o not_o the_o order_n observe_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v a_o plain_a evidence_n
christ_n and_o that_o we_o may_v grow_v up_o into_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o head_n even_o christ_n now_o here_o we_o do_v not_o only_o find_v our_o saviour_n represent_v as_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o we_o as_o the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n but_o that_o among_o the_o several_a subordinate_a member_n of_o which_o his_o body_n consist_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o that_o most_o necessary_a member_n of_o all_o if_o i_o may_v call_v it_o a_o member_n the_o vicarious_a head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o give_v first_o peter_n to_o be_v head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o then_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o give_v first_o some_o apostle_n and_o those_o not_o as_o head_n of_o his_o church_n neither_o but_o as_o principal_a member_n of_o it_o and_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n where_o he_o describe_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o now_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o the_o cardinal_n will_v have_v omit_v here_o one_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v unite_v and_o then_o let_v any_o man_n tell_v i_o why_o st._n paul_n do_v he_o have_v the_o like_a occasion_n in_o another_o place_n where_o have_v say_v much_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n you_o be_v say_v he_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n second_o prophet_n 28._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 27_o 28._o three_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n now_o i_o say_v if_o this_o visible_a head_n of_o unity_n have_v be_v elsewhere_o mention_v never_o so_o often_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v omit_v in_o any_o of_o these_o three_o place_n much_o less_o if_o he_o be_v mention_v no_o where_o else_o but_o no_o notice_n be_v take_v of_o this_o head_n elsewhere_o nor_o here_o neither_o be_v little_o less_o than_o a_o demonstration_n that_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o head_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o when_o any_o one_o shall_v pretend_v to_o so_o high_a a_o prerogative_n and_o vast_a a_o dependence_n as_o this_o imply_v we_o may_v in_o reason_n expect_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v some_o very_a good_a evidence_n of_o his_o right_n to_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o mere_a silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v prejudice_n enough_o against_o the_o pretence_n but_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o such_o place_n as_o i_o have_v produce_v be_v a_o direct_a argument_n against_o it_o nay_o last_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v the_o least_o intimation_n of_o any_o such_o headship_n where_o the_o mention_n of_o it_o be_v unavoidable_a if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o divine_a constitution_n that_o it_o seem_v express_o to_o oppose_v it_o for_o st._n paul_n speak_v against_o those_o contention_n which_o happen_v by_o one_o saying_n i_o be_o of_o paul_n another_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n a_o three_o i_o be_o of_o cephas_n he_o do_v not_o oppose_v cephas_n or_o peter_n to_o the_o rest_n as_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o say_v i_o be_o of_o peter_n but_o not_o i_o be_o of_o paul_n etc._n etc._n but_o utter_o reprove_v all_o such_o distinction_n and_o require_v they_o all_o to_o be_v unite_v in_o christ_n be_v christ_n divide_v say_v he_o be_v paul_n crucify_a for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptise_a in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n plain_o show_v that_o to_o establish_v any_o mortal_a man_n as_o the_o centre_n of_o union_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o divide_v the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o if_o we_o unite_v ourselves_o in_o such_o a_o head_n we_o may_v as_o well_o be_v baptize_v in_o his_o name_n and_o have_v he_o for_o our_o saviour_n too_o 2._o as_o little_a foundation_n be_v there_o in_o reason_n for_o this_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n since_o it_o will_v necessary_o require_v that_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n even_o those_o that_o be_v at_o great_a distance_n from_o one_o another_o be_v reduce_v under_o his_o government_n and_o depend_v upon_o his_o authority_n the_o administration_n of_o which_o vast_a power_n and_o trust_n be_v incompatible_a to_o any_o mortal_a man._n be_v vest_v in_o a_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n it_o can_v be_v but_o of_o little_a benefit_n to_o a_o body_n so_o diffusive_a as_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o weak_a or_o vicious_a person_n it_o will_v become_v the_o instrument_n of_o pride_n tyranny_n oppression_n and_o division_n a_o small_a bishopric_n require_v the_o utmost_a care_n and_o prudence_n to_o manage_v it_o aright_o but_o what_o ability_n without_o a_o miracle_n can_v be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o tolerable_a discharge_n of_o so_o great_a a_o trust_n as_o the_o inspection_n and_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o other_o but_o the_o temptation_n to_o abuse_v such_o power_n will_v be_v infinite_a and_o the_o abuse_n themselves_o intolerable_a and_o hardly_o capable_a of_o redress_n as_o we_o see_v also_o by_o no_o small_a experience_n for_o after_o that_o that_o power_n be_v pretend_v to_o at_o rome_n and_o submit_v to_o by_o the_o western_a church_n the_o scandal_n &_o misery_n of_o this_o part_n of_o christendom_n grow_v to_o such_o a_o extremity_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v dissemble_v insomuch_o that_o the_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n appoint_v by_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o to_o advise_v concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o consil_n de_fw-fr emend_n eccl._n in_o rich_a l._n 4._o assure_v he_o that_o she_o be_v just_a fall_v headlong_o into_o ruin_n and_o that_o the_o chief_a cause_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o pleasure_n have_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o his_o do_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v consider_v what_o a_o lewd_a and_o filthy_a place_n rome_n itself_o be_v grow_v by_o their_o own_o confession_n may_v observe_v from_o thence_o how_o likely_a it_o be_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n shall_v thrive_v in_o one_o man_n hand_n after_o another_o who_o be_v too_o busy_a to_o attend_v upon_o the_o reformation_n of_o most_o scandalous_a and_o cry_a disorder_n at_o home_n 3._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o colour_n in_o antiquity_n for_o this_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n although_o they_o be_v the_o primitive_a father_n upon_o who_o authority_n chief_o they_o will_v support_v this_o usurpation_n the_o testimony_n which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v choose_v for_o his_o purpose_n be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o one_o will_v wonder_v to_o see_v so_o weighty_a a_o superstructure_n lay_v upon_o so_o weak_a a_o foundation_n thus_o because_o s._n irenaeus_n say_v that_o every_o church_n i.e._n the_o faithful_a who_o be_v all_o about_o must_v needs_o resort_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n i.e._n because_o the_o imperial_a city_n draw_v the_o business_n of_o the_o world_n to_o itself_o and_o by_o consequence_n christian_n in_o all_o part_n have_v occasion_n of_o recourse_n to_o it_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world._n because_o s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o roman_a the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v arise_v and_o the_o matrix_fw-la and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n therefore_o he_o can_v mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o union_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o a_o part_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n whereas_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o elsewhere_o he_o do_v free_o assert_v the_o independence_n of_o other_o bishop_n upon_o that_o bishop_n and_o of_o other_o episcopal_a church_n upon_o that_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o he_o call_v it_o the_o principal_a church_n as_o be_v constitute_v in_o the_o principal_a city_n so_o rigaltius_n acknowledge_v and_o the_o spring_n of_o sacerdotal_a unity_n and_o the_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o bishop_n have_v occasion_n either_o to_o come_v up_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o send_v thither_o from_o all_o part_n do_v by_o their_o unity_n with_o the_o church_n there_o manifest_o declare_v their_o union_n to_o one_o another_o which_o be_v a_o convenience_n accrue_v to_o that_o church_n and_o to_o all_o other_o from_o the_o imperial_a city_n in_o which_o it_o be_v constitute_v but_o by_o no_o mean_n infer_v that_o other_o church_n be_v more_o oblige_v to_o union_n with_o she_o than_o she_o with_o other_o again_o because_o
it_o be_v sometime_o a_o mark_n of_o a_o orthodox_n and_o catholic_n christian_n to_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n therefore_o it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o and_o it_o can_v never_o happen_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v unite_v to_o the_o church_n and_o disjoin_v from_o the_o pope_n because_o st._n hierom_n refer_v himself_o to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n when_o damasus_n sit_v in_o it_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v do_v the_o same_o to_o his_o predecessor_n liberius_n after_o he_o have_v communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n be_v the_o argument_n from_o optatus_n final_o because_o st._n augustin_n think_v that_o cecilian_a have_v reason_n to_o value_v his_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n more_o than_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o principality_n of_o a_o apostolical_a chair_n have_v always_o flourish_v there_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o apostolical_a chair_n beside_o that_o at_o rome_n and_o as_o if_o the_o communion_n of_o no_o other_o church_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v when_o a_o bishop_n meet_v with_o unreasonable_a opposition_n but_o one_o that_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o her_o chair_n mistress_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o what_o he_o say_v out_o of_o st._n augustin_n in_o psal_n contra_fw-la partem_fw-la donati_n it_o have_v have_v its_o answer_n p._n 107._o pope_n leo_n indeed_o speak_v a_o little_a more_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o without_o any_o authority_n as_o be_v a_o witness_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n for_o it_o be_v but_o a_o few_o year_n before_o that_o zosimus_n boniface_n and_o celestin_n have_v set_v up_o a_o small_a pretence_n to_o a_o universal_a headship_n though_o nothing_o be_v get_v by_o it_o but_o a_o notable_a rebuke_n from_o the_o african_a father_n whereof_o st._n augustin_n be_v one_o for_o introduce_v a_o worldly_a pride_n into_o the_o church_n but_o no_o wonder_n if_o those_o pope_n that_o follow_v still_o keep_v their_o eye_n upon_o that_o power_n which_o their_o predecessor_n can_v not_o as_o yet_o compass_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o appear_v by_o most_o unquestionable_a evidence_n that_o the_o primitive_a father_n know_v no_o great_a necessity_n of_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o roman_a than_o to_o any_o other_o catholic_n or_o orthodox_n bishop_n when_o pope_n victor_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o asian_a church_n for_o not_o observe_v easter_n as_o the_o roman_a do_v they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v a_o union_n with_o he_o as_o their_o head_n necessary_a to_o their_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o they_o call_v a_o synod_n of_o their_o own_o reprehend_v the_o pope_n arrogance_n and_o resolve_v to_o adhere_v to_o their_o own_o custom_n st._n cyprian_n firmilian_a and_o the_o african_n do_v the_o like_a in_o opposition_n to_o pope_n stephen_n oxon._n apud_fw-la cypr._n ep._n 75._o p._n 228._o ed._n oxon._n firmilian_a plain_o tell_v he_o that_o while_o he_o think_v to_o excommunicate_v all_o they_o from_o himself_o he_o have_v but_o excommunicate_v himself_o from_o they_o in_o ancient_a time_n there_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o any_o such_o headship_n in_o the_o pope_n as_o of_o late_a age_n have_v be_v contend_v for_o he_o be_v treat_v with_o no_o other_o title_n of_o respect_n than_o other_o bishop_n be_v who_o be_v call_v pope_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n no_o less_o than_o he_o as_o he_o be_v by_o they_o style_v their_o colleague_n and_o brother_n no_o less_o than_o they_o by_o he_o in_o respect_n of_o presidency_n over_o particular_a church_n his_o jurisdiction_n be_v confine_v as_o well_o as_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o common_a care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n each_o of_o they_o be_v deem_v to_o have_v a_o authority_n and_o a_o trust_v no_o way_n inferior_a to_o his_o all_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v full_a well_o understand_v who_o be_v but_o a_o little_a conversant_a in_o st._n cyprian_n if_o they_o will_v but_o speak_v what_o they_o know_v but_o because_o st._n hierom_n compl●mt_v to_o damasus_n be_v insist_v upon_o by_o the_o cardinal_n let_v st._n hierom_n be_v hear_v speak_v to_o this_o very_a point_n so_o clear_o that_o we_o can_v desire_v he_o shall_v have_v be_v more_o express_a wherever_o say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o bishop_n whether_o at_o rome_n 85._o hier._n ad_fw-la evagr._fw-la ep._n 85._o or_o at_o eugubium_n or_o constantinople_n or_o rhegium_n or_o alexandria_n or_o thanis_n he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o worth_n and_o of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n the_o advantage_n of_o wealth_n and_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o poverty_n do_v not_o make_v a_o bishop_n to_o be_v high_a or_o low_a but_o they_o be_v all_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n pope_n have_v be_v ancient_o censure_v condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v when_o they_o be_v think_v to_o have_v deserve_v it_o julius_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n etc._n s●●_n vindic._n of_o answ_n to_o some_o late_a paper_n p._n 6._o etc._n etc._n liberius_n anathematise_v by_o st._n hilary_n vigilius_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o african_n honorius_n condemn_v by_o the_o vith_o general_n council_n do_v these_o father_n take_v the_o pope_n for_o their_o common_a head_n and_o the_o centre_n of_o catholic_n union_n some_o pope_n have_v be_v heretic_n as_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o can_v deny_v and_o therefore_o time_n have_v be_v when_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a so_o to_o be_v without_o separation_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o the_o cardinal_n have_v a_o very_a notable_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o this_o union_n viz._n experience_n since_o those_o church_n have_v wither_v away_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o this_o head_n the_o pope_n witness_v the_o asiatic_a and_o african_a church_n ancient_o famous_a for_o numerous_a council_n for_o learned_a and_o holy_a man_n but_o since_o their_o schism_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n reduce_v to_o obscurity_n and_o plunge_v into_o gross_a ignorance_n to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v enough_o to_o answer_v that_o although_o where_o the_o sin_n be_v flagrant_a and_o beyond_o controversy_n there_o the_o calamity_n that_o befall_v the_o offender_n may_v without_o breach_n of_o charity_n or_o impious_a intrusion_n into_o the_o council_n of_o providence_n be_v well_o deem_v the_o effect_n of_o god_n justice_n yet_o in_o a_o dispute_n about_o right_n and_o truth_n to_o take_v advantage_n from_o the_o affliction_n of_o a_o man_n or_o of_o a_o church_n and_o to_o make_v they_o a_o argument_n against_o the_o oppress_a side_n be_v barbarous_o uncharitable_a and_o wicked_a and_o become_v none_o but_o those_o who_o care_v not_o by_o what_o mean_v they_o come_v to_o their_o end_n but_o not_o to_o pry_v into_o the_o secret_n of_o divine_a providence_n may_v it_o not_o have_v serve_v the_o cardinal_n turn_n to_o assign_v the_o affliction_n and_o ignorance_n of_o those_o church_n to_o the_o eruption_n of_o their_o enemy_n upon_o they_o who_o at_o length_n prevail_v and_o utter_o destroy_v some_o of_o they_o and_o to_o this_o day_n hold_v the_o rest_n in_o slavery_n if_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o what_o if_o one_o shall_v add_v that_o their_o not_o unite_n themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n be_v indeed_o one_o cause_n of_o their_o misfortune_n who_o have_v much_o rather_o see_v those_o ancient_a and_o glorious_a church_n lay_v waist_n by_o infidel_n then_o save_v by_o the_o unite_a arm_n of_o christendom_n to_o make_v a_o vigorous_a opposition_n to_o his_o claim_n of_o supremacy_n however_o it_o be_v not_o more_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v once_o the_o most_o flourish_a church_n in_o christendom_n than_o that_o when_o they_o be_v so_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v this_o union_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n nay_o that_o they_o oppose_v the_o beginning_n and_o preparation_n to_o so_o unjust_a a_o claim_n and_o therefore_o their_o deny_v it_o at_o present_a can_v with_o no_o reason_n be_v allege_v as_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o distress_n one_o thing_n more_o we_o have_v to_o say_v to_o this_o doughty_a argument_n that_o if_o it_o may_v be_v trust_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o we_o have_v a_o contrary_a experience_n in_o church_n near_a home_n which_o have_v not_o fall_v into_o decay_n by_o separate_v from_o the_o pope_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o from_o the_o reformation_n to_o this_o day_n there_o have_v be_v as_o many_o person_n eminent_a both_o for_o piety_n and_o learning_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o any_o age_n ever_o produce_v in_o any_o nation_n that_o we_o be_v not_o sink_v into_o gross_a
ignorance_n our_o adversary_n know_v by_o some_o experience_n and_o we_o may_v say_v without_o need_n of_o blush_v for_o the_o matter_n that_o they_o have_v feel_v some_o learning_n from_o this_o church_n which_o their_o union_n to_o the_o pope_n have_v of_o late_o help_v very_o few_o of_o they_o to_o and_o if_o we_o may_v conclude_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o example_n of_o those_o within_o their_o own_o communion_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o more_o close_o any_o of_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o this_o suppose_a head_n their_o piety_n and_o learning_n do_v not_o flourish_v one_o jot_n the_o more_o for_o it_o let_v the_o learning_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n be_v compare_v with_o that_o of_o spain_n or_o italy_n let_v the_o piety_n of_o the_o regulars_n especial_o of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v weigh_v with_o that_o of_o the_o secular_a clergy_n and_o i_o believe_v it_o will_v appear_v that_o this_o union_n be_v no_o such_o excellent_a advantage_n either_o towards_o piety_n or_o learning_n that_o they_o shall_v appeal_v to_o experience_n to_o show_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o either_o to_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o their_o union_n to_o the_o pope_n 2._o neither_o be_v the_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o among_o themselves_o as_o member_n any_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n be_v not_o content_a to_o describe_v their_o union_n by_o think_v the_o same_o concern_v all_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n but_o will_v have_v it_o to_o exclude_v also_o discord_n and_o dissension_n and_o fall_v into_o sect_n and_o party_n for_o since_o he_o deny_v such_o union_n to_o be_v find_v among_o pagan_n and_o heretic_n he_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o affirm_v it_o of_o the_o member_n of_o his_o church_n if_o he_o talk_v to_o any_o purpose_n now_o admit_v it_o be_v so_o 1._o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o any_o society_n may_v have_v as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o any_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a the_o member_n of_o every_o church_n be_v thus_o far_o unite_v that_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o profess_v the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o society_n to_o which_o they_o belong_v but_o about_o other_o doctrine_n they_o either_o fall_v into_o dissension_n or_o not_o as_o it_o happen_v and_o for_o some_o considerable_a time_n they_o may_v agree_v very_o well_o and_o at_o length_n fall_v out_o in_o which_o case_n according_a to_o bellarmin_n note_n they_o will_v be_v the_o true_a church_n while_o they_o agree_v whatever_o their_o faith_n shall_v be_v which_o be_v most_o absurd_a it_o be_v not_o whether_o man_n be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o in_o what_o they_o believe_v but_o whether_o that_o wherein_o they_o be_v unite_v be_v the_o right_a faith_n that_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v union_n in_o a_o false_a way_n be_v a_o confederacy_n in_o error_n and_o the_o more_o that_o man_n be_v unite_v in_o it_o the_o more_o wise_a or_o prudent_a they_o may_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v but_o never_o the_o more_o orthodox_n and_o though_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v that_o say_v of_o our_o saviour_n every_o kingdom_n divide_v against_o itself_o twelve_o matth._n twelve_o be_v bring_v to_o desolation_n to_o show_v that_o discord_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n yet_o he_o have_v manifest_o pervert_v the_o place_n inasmuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n discourse_n there_o proceed_v upon_o the_o contrary_a supposition_n viz._n that_o satan_n be_v not_o divide_v against_o himself_o 2._o as_o there_o may_v be_v this_o union_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n so_o it_o may_v not_o be_v within_o it_o which_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o this_o be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o there_o be_v division_n in_o the_o first_o apostolical_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n consist_v all_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o if_o the_o cardinal_n mean_v that_o the_o break_n of_o a_o church_n into_o party_n and_o the_o rise_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n out_o of_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v that_o there_o never_o be_v a_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o if_o for_o this_o reason_n he_o will_v unchurch_n the_o protestant_n he_o do_v in_o effect_n put_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n as_o this_o against_o the_o reformation_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n against_o christianity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o it_o at_o all_o and_o because_o christian_n be_v so_o divide_v one_o against_o another_o therefore_o none_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n for_o a_o more_o particular_a consideration_n of_o this_o argument_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o apologetical_a vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n late_o publish_v thus_o much_o for_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n which_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v not_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n i_o proceed_v to_o show_v ii_o that_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o which_o be_v probable_o true_a of_o the_o first_o and_o most_o certain_o true_a of_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o cardinal_n unity_n 1._o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n want_v the_o first_o and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o no_o true_a pope_n nor_o have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n for_o that_o church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o for_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n a_o pope_n simoniacal_o choose_v a_o pope_n intrude_v by_o violence_n a_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o sure_a a_o atheist_n or_o a_o infidel_n be_v no_o true_a pope_n and_o many_o such_o there_o have_v be_v of_o one_o sort_n or_o other_o who_o act_n therefore_o in_o create_v cardinal_n etc._n etc._n be_v invalid_a it_o be_v exceed_o probable_a that_o the_o whole_a succession_n have_v upon_o this_o account_n fail_v long_o ago_o beside_o there_o have_v be_v about_o 25_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o last_o of_o which_o continue_v no_o less_o than_o 50_o year_n wherein_o two_o and_o sometime_o three_o pope_n pretend_v to_o st._n peter_n chair_n create_v cardinal_n have_v their_o several_a party_n and_o abettor_n etc._n etc._n during_o which_o schism_n it_o will_v be_v a_o madness_n to_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n when_o they_o be_v all_o together_o by_o the_o ear_n which_o of_o the_o anti-popes_n be_v the_o true_a one_o now_o while_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a pope_n there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o validity_n of_o any_o act_n necessary_a to_o continue_v a_o succession_n of_o true_a pope_n but_o this_o case_n have_v happen_v so_o often_o and_o sometime_o continue_v for_o many_o year_n the_o uncertainty_n must_v have_v at_o last_o grow_v into_o a_o utter_a improbability_n that_o they_o have_v a_o pope_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o cardinal_n that_o they_o be_v a_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v all_o one_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v unite_v with_o a_o nominal_a pope_n or_o a_o real_a pope_n with_o a_o true_a head_n or_o a_o false_a head_n or_o any_o head_n whatsoever_o but_o 2._o it_o be_v undoubted_o true_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o unity_n viz._n that_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o one_o another_o which_o the_o cardinal_n pretend_v whether_o by_o it_o he_o mean_v a_o union_n in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n of_o great_a consequence_n among_o those_o who_o remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o pretend_a catholic_n church_n or_o such_o a_o union_n of_o their_o member_n as_o shall_v prevent_v the_o break_n away_o of_o some_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o rest_n she_o have_v not_o the_o former_a unity_n for_o if_o philosopher_n heretic_n etc._n etc._n have_v have_v their_o sect_n and_o party_n and_o be_v at_o great_a dissension_n among_o themselves_o so_o have_v the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n too_o he_o pretend_v that_o all_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o their_o church_n do_v wonderful_o agree_v now_o to_o let_v pass_v his_o presumption_n in_o suppose_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v one_o part_n of_o these_o their_o writer_n we_o will_v for_o the_o present_n admit_v it_o and_o only_o ask_v if_o they_o agree_v so_o wonderful_o with_o the_o father_n what_o need_v there_o be_v of_o a_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la upon_o the_o father_n to_o make_v they_o and_o the_o father_n of_o trent_n agree_v something_o better_a he_o pretend_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o lawful_a council_n agree_v in_o conveniunt_fw-la in_o
we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 4._o there_o be_v also_o a_o unity_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o institution_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o unity_n that_o ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v forget_v this_o be_v no_o less_o a_o common_a duty_n than_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o performance_n whereof_o unit_v we_o effectual_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o head_n and_o make_v we_o live_v member_n of_o his_o body_n 5._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o christian_a affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n of_o which_o our_o lord_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v by_o this_o shall_v all_o man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o love_v one_o another_o thus_o st._n paul_n twelve_o 1_o cor._n twelve_o the_o member_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o care_n one_o of_o another_o etc._n etc._n 6._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o government_n which_o be_v maintain_v chief_o by_o retain_v for_o substance_n the_o same_o form_n that_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n confederate_v together_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o their_o flock_n by_o regard_v every_o regular_a act_n of_o authority_n in_o one_o church_n as_o the_o act_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o give_v no_o occasion_n to_o breach_n of_o christian-communion_n by_o abuse_v a_o lawful_a or_o by_o claim_v a_o undue_a authority_n etc._n etc._n 7._o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o glorify_v god_n with_o one_o mouth_n in_o join_v in_o the_o same_o religious_a assembly_n for_o prayer_n and_o sacrament_n for_o act_n of_o common_a piety_n and_o devotion_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o need_v not_o mention_v any_o more_o instance_n of_o christian_a unity_n since_o those_o that_o be_v more_o particular_a may_v be_v easy_o deduce_v from_o these_o now_o to_o speak_v clear_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v all_o these_o kind_n and_o instance_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n but_o we_o see_v evident_o that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o there_o i_o mean_v in_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o all_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n how_o necessary_a soever_o they_o may_v be_v whether_o to_o the_o wellbeing_n of_o it_o or_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o person_n whereof_o the_o church_n consist_v but_o some_o of_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o one_o lord_n the_o profession_n of_o the_o one_o faith_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a duty_n and_o privilege_n by_o one_o baptism_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v find_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o as_o unity_n in_o these_o thing_n be_v spread_v and_o obtain_v in_o the_o world_n so_o far_o and_o no_o far_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n propagate_v because_o it_o be_v one_o by_o this_o unity_n but_o then_o indeed_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o far_a unity_n a_o unity_n of_o observe_v all_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n a_o unity_n of_o christian_a charity_n and_o good_a will_n a_o unity_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n a_o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o religious_a assembly_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v also_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o care_n to_o keep_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n all_o dangerous_a error_n and_o unlawful_a practice_n and_o when_o such_o begin_v to_o appear_v much_o more_o if_o they_o have_v take_v root_n and_o be_v grow_v to_o a_o scandal_n to_o root_v they_o out_o again_o but_o unity_n in_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o run_v through_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o through_o that_o body_n which_o be_v one_o in_o the_o three_o former_a respect_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o one_o body_n in_o those_o late_a respect_n though_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o but_o because_o these_o be_v proper_a instance_n of_o church-unity_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o those_o particular_a church_n which_o keep_v unity_n in_o these_o respect_v better_a than_o other_o do_v have_v the_o mark_v of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o those_o other_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v not_o only_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o that_o also_o which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o a_o pure_a church_n and_o be_v not_o only_o one_o body_n in_o those_o thing_n without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o one_o also_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v one_o with_o they_o we_o therefore_o according_a to_o truth_n allow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o she_o hold_v that_o one_o lord_n that_o one_o faith_n that_o one_o baptism_n which_o we_o hold_v &_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o and_o thus_o far_o she_o maintain_v catholic_n unity_n but_o inasmuch_o as_o she_o have_v violate_v the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n concern_v the_o other_o sacrament_n as_o in_o other_o respect_n so_o by_o withhold_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n notwithstanding_o he_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n even_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o catholic_n unity_n the_o unity_n of_o obedience_n because_o she_o will_v not_o be_v content_a to_o be_v a_o sister_n but_o claim_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n and_o have_v advance_v her_o bishop_n to_o be_v head_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o will_v have_v commuion_n with_o no_o other_o christian_a society_n but_o such_o as_o will_v be_v content_a to_o become_v her_o subject_n and_o will_v allow_v no_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o be_v valid_a but_o in_o a_o state_n of_o dependence_n upon_o she_o she_o have_v therefore_o depart_v from_o the_o catholic_n unity_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n because_o she_o have_v bring_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n into_o her_o creed_n and_o practice_n suitable_a to_o such_o false_a doctrine_n into_o her_o worship_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o that_o purity_n of_o profess_v the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o all_o church_n shall_v be_v one_o and_o because_o she_o will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o we_o but_o upon_o these_o term_n which_o be_v impossible_a she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n communion_n final_o because_o she_o have_v pursue_v all_o christian_n that_o dare_v to_o open_v their_o mouth_n against_o these_o innovation_n with_o anathema_n etc._n etc._n and_o sacrifice_v the_o life_n of_o innumerable_a christian_n to_o her_o resentment_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n charity_n with_o these_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v be_v charge_v nor_o with_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o not_o true_o and_o just_o i_o be_o sure_a in_o her_o worship_n and_o aministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n she_o transgress_v not_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o her_o government_n she_o encroach_v not_o upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o other_o church_n to_o her_o creed_n she_o have_v add_v no_o novelty_n to_o her_o communion_n she_o have_v annex_v no_o unlawful_a condition_n she_o do_v not_o unchurch_n those_o part_n of_o christendom_n that_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n no_o not_o that_o church_n itself_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v add_v thereunto_o so_o many_o enormous_a innovation_n she_o have_v not_o embroil_v the_o world_n nor_o waste_a country_n with_o violence_n upon_o such_o account_n as_o these_o she_o have_v the_o mark_n of_o christian_a unity_n incomparable_o more_o than_o the_o other_o church_n from_o such_o distinct_a notion_n of_o unity_n as_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o idle_a than_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o church_n by_o that_o mark_n of_o unity_n which_o the_o cardinal_n lay_v down_o which_o come_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o man_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o they_o etc._n etc._n since_o it_o be_v not_o
be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n iii_o that_o in_o case_n it_o be_v the_o protestant_a church_n will_v be_v the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i._o i_o shall_v premise_v these_o five_o thing_n as_o preparatory_a to_o what_o follow_v 1._o that_o by_o a_o unhappy_a end_n bellarmin_n mean_v that_o which_o be_v so_o in_o outward_a appearance_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o sense_n or_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o world._n such_o as_o a_o violent_a or_o sudden_a or_o infamous_a or_o any_o kind_n of_o strange_a or_o unusual_a death_n especial_o such_o in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o appearance_n of_o the_o divine_a vengeance_n as_o to_o be_v devour_v by_o dog_n or_o eat_v up_o of_o vermin_n to_o be_v flay_v or_o burn_v alive_a for_o a_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o or_o to_o be_v kill_v by_o his_o servant_n to_o be_v smite_v by_o a_o thunderbolt_n etc._n etc._n in_o a_o word_n any_o such_o end_n as_o either_o in_o its_o nature_n or_o in_o its_o circumstance_n be_v not_o the_o usual_a or_o common_a end_n of_o men._n 2._o bellarmin_n mean_v this_o not_o bare_o for_o the_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o since_o beside_o the_o common_a faith_n in_o which_o all_o christian_n agree_v there_o be_v many_o point_n in_o which_o they_o differ_v and_o by_o which_o they_o be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o into_o several_a party_n he_o suppose_v that_o no_o more_o than_o one_o of_o these_o can_v be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o that_o that_o one_o must_v be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n his_o work_n be_v to_o furnish_v we_o with_o such_o note_n by_o which_o this_o one_o church_n may_v be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v from_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o therefore_o 3._o the_o instance_n he_o produce_v of_o unhappy_a death_n be_v for_o the_o great_a part_n impertinent_a because_o the_o person_n be_v such_o as_o be_v enemy_n not_o to_o this_o or_o that_o christian_a church_n as_o distinguish_v from_o another_o but_o to_o christianity_n itself_o and_o endeavour_v the_o total_a extirpation_n of_o it_o out_o of_o the_o world._n so_o do_v the_o emperor_n nero_n domitian_n dioclesian_n the_o apostate_n julian_n etc._n etc._n and_o those_o heretic_n simon_n magus_n manichaeus_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o more_o opposite_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o to_o any_o other_o christian_a church_n there_o be_v nothing_o therefore_o in_o these_o instance_n by_o which_o one_o christian_n church_n may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o another_o nothing_o by_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v mark_v out_o for_o the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n or_o alexandria_n and_o as_o those_o direful_a death_n of_o the_o heathen_a persecutor_n and_o apostate_n christian_n give_v no_o peculiar_a advantage_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o so_o they_o make_v much_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o for_o if_o they_o signify_v as_o bellarmin_n will_v have_v they_o that_o church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v then_o oppose_v by_o they_o it_o plain_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o be_v not_o the_o same_o church_n it_o be_v then_o it_o have_v now_o another_o faith_n by_o which_o it_o be_v become_v another_o church_n whereas_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v the_o same_o now_o it_o be_v at_o first_o yea_o the_o same_o now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o it_o have_v purge_v herself_o from_o those_o corruption_n which_o have_v be_v since_o introduce_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o reduce_v itself_o to_o the_o primitive_a faith._n those_o other_o example_n of_o tragical_a death_n which_o if_o they_o have_v be_v true_a will_v have_v be_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n shall_v be_v anon_o consider_v 4._o observe_v that_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o who_o defend_v it_o must_v be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n if_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a the_o reason_n be_v plain_a because_o those_o who_o defend_v it_o in_o do_v so_o they_o must_v oppose_v that_o church_n that_o oppose_v it_o if_o they_o therefore_o have_v a_o unhappy_a end_n the_o opposite_a church_n will_v have_v this_o note_n of_o the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o church_n they_o defend_v in_o opposition_n to_o it_o must_v be_v a_o false_a church_n 5._o observe_v that_o from_o god_n judgement_n against_o particular_a person_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v against_o that_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n the_o reason_n be_v manifest_a because_o god_n judgement_n upon_o particular_a person_n be_v usual_o inflict_v for_o particular_a personal_a crime_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o nadab_n and_o abihu_n ananias_n and_o sapphira_n these_o thing_n be_v premise_v i_o proceed_v to_o show_v ii_o that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o i_o may_v prove_v at_o large_a by_o show_v that_o it_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o those_o condition_n which_o cardinal_n perron_n 5._o perron_n reply_v to_o k._n james_n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o and_o bellarmin_n himself_o 2._o himself_o de_fw-fr not._n eccles_n c._n 2._o make_v necessary_a to_o every_o true_a note_n but_o because_o this_o method_n have_v be_v already_o observe_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o some_o of_o the_o forego_n mark_n i_o shall_v therefore_o wave_v the_o advantage_n it_o will_v afford_v i_o nor_o do_v i_o indeed_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o they_o because_o the_o vanity_n and_o falsity_n of_o it_o will_v be_v otherwise_o sufficient_o manifest_a both_o by_o scripture_n experience_n and_o reason_n first_o by_o scripture_n and_o 1._o by_o all_o those_o scripture_n which_o declare_v that_o all_o thing_n come_v alike_o to_o all_o man_n that_o in_o the_o common_a course_n of_o providence_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n put_v between_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o wicked_a between_o he_o that_o sacrifice_v and_o he_o that_o sacrifice_v not_o 3._o not_o eccles_n 9.1_o 2_o 3._o and_o by_o a_o plain_a parity_n of_o reason_n he_o that_o persecute_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o he_o that_o defend_v it_o he_o that_o worship_v god_n aright_o and_o he_o that_o worship_v he_o amiss_o or_o not_o at_o all_o as_o to_o outward_a event_n have_v frequent_o the_o same_o lot_n as_o king_n josiah_n the_o restorer_n and_o maintainer_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o who_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n die_v the_o same_o unnatural_a death_n that_o ahab_n do_v who_o serve_v baal_n and_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_v more_o than_o all_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v before_o he_o nor_o be_v this_o promiscuous_a dispensation_n of_o event_n take_v notice_n of_o only_a by_o wise_a solomon_n but_o we_o find_v it_o long_o before_o affirm_v by_o job_n that_o god_n destroy_v both_o the_o perfect_a and_o the_o wicked_a 9.22_o wicked_a job_n 9.22_o righteous_a abel_n the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o die_v be_v a_o proof_n of_o it_o he_o who_o sacrifice_n be_v by_o god_n accept_v fall_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o wicked_a brother_n envy_n nor_o be_v it_o thus_o only_o before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n but_o it_o continue_v so_o still_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n the_o tare_n and_o the_o wheat_n though_o sow_o by_o different_a hand_n the_o one_o by_o the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o other_o by_o the_o devil_n yet_o as_o they_o grow_v up_o together_o in_o the_o same_o field_n so_o they_o be_v gather_v and_o cut_v down_o by_o the_o same_o reaper_n by_o the_o same_o sickle_n and_o be_v not_o sever_v the_o one_o for_o the_o fire_n and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o barn_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n yea_o in_o plain_a contradiction_n to_o this_o note_n the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v just_a man_n to_o who_o it_o happen_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o there_o be_v wicked_a man_n to_o who_o it_o happen_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o righteous_a 8.14_o righteous_a eccl._n 8.14_o and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o course_n of_o their_o life_n but_o when_o they_o die_v too_o for_o there_o be_v a_o just_a man_n that_o perish_v in_o his_o righteousness_n and_o there_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n that_o prolong_v his_o day_n in_o his_o wickedness_n 7.15_o wickedness_n eccl._n 7.15_o the_o good_a man_n be_v sometime_o cut_v off_o by_o a_o early_a death_n because_o he_o be_v better_a than_o other_o and_o the_o wicked_a who_o sin_n cry_v aloud_o for_o vengeance_n prolong_v his_o day_n in_o his_o wickedness_n and_o after_o a_o long_a and_o
prosperous_a life_n have_v a_o honourable_a death_n and_o burial_n for_o i_o see_v say_v solomon_n the_o wicked_a bury_v 8.10_o bury_v eccles_n 8.10_o that_o be_v as_o cardinal_n cajetan_n expound_v the_o word_n in_o such_o a_o pompous_a sepulchre_n as_o transmits_n a_o honourable_a memory_n of_o they_o to_o posterity_n i_o grant_v that_o the_o note_n of_o divine_a vengeance_n be_v in_o some_o man_n death_n fair_o legible_a but_o then_o as_o i_o have_v before_o observe_v from_o god_n judgement_n against_o this_o or_o that_o person_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v against_o that_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n 2._o beside_o these_o general_a declaration_n the_o scripture_n further_o assure_v we_o by_o a_o particular_a instance_n that_o a_o true_a church_n may_v be_v without_o this_o mark_n and_o that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o true_a church_n may_v have_v it_o thus_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n be_v without_o it_o and_o the_o uncircumcised_a philistine_n have_v it_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n fall_v backward_o and_o break_v his_o neck_n and_o his_o two_o son_n hophni_n and_o phineas_n with_o thirty_o thousand_o of_o the_o israelite_n fall_v in_o one_o day_n by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o philistine_n 3._o philistine_n 1_o sam._n 3._o again_o when_o zedekiah_n the_o defender_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v take_v his_o noble_n slaughter_v his_o son_n slay_v before_o his_o eye_n his_o eye_n then_o put_v out_o and_o he_o carry_v captive_a to_o babylon_n and_o put_v in_o prison_n till_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n if_o this_o be_v then_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o babylonian_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o god_n for_o their_o enemy_n have_v then_o the_o most_o unhappy_a end_n so_o contrary_a be_v this_o note_n to_o what_o we_o find_v in_o scripture_n second_o nor_o be_v it_o less_o repugnant_a to_o daily_a observation_n and_o the_o history_n of_o forego_v age_n for_o 1._o all_o the_o world_n can_v testify_v that_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o death_n happen_v to_o man_n of_o different_a yea_o of_o opposite_a church_n that_o as_o die_v the_o christian_n so_o die_v the_o jew_n as_o dies_z the_o catholic_n so_o die_v the_o heretic_n that_o the_o protestant_n and_o papist_n lie_n down_o alike_o in_o the_o dust_n to_o use_v job_n phrase_n 21.26_o phrase_n job_n 21.26_o that_o as_o they_o often_o agree_v in_o their_o death_n who_o while_o they_o live_v be_v of_o different_a church_n so_o they_o often_o wide_o differ_v who_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o one_o have_v a_o natural_a another_o a_o violent_a death_n one_o fall_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n another_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o neighbour_n one_o go_v off_o gentle_o in_o a_o calm_a another_o be_v hurry_v away_o in_o a_o storm_n one_o life_n out_o the_o term_n of_o nature_n another_o be_v cut_v off_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o day_n one_o die_v leisurely_o another_o be_v snatch_v away_o sudden_o one_o find_v a_o grave_a in_o the_o earth_n another_o in_o the_o sea_n another_o find_v none_o at_o all_o but_o be_v expose_v as_o a_o prey_n to_o beast_n and_o bird_n this_o be_v so_o obvious_a that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o produce_v instance_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o it_o 2._o whosoever_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n know_v that_o for_o several_a of_o the_o first_o age_n at_o least_o the_o best_a man_n have_v general_o the_o worst_a death_n that_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o a_o spectacle_n to_o the_o world_n suffer_v the_o death_n of_o the_o base_a malefactor_n that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n andrew_n be_v crucify_v st._n james_n the_o just_a stone_v and_o his_o brain_n knock_v out_o with_o a_o club_n st._n bartholomew_n flay_v alive_a that_o not_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n can_v be_v name_v who_o do_v not_o end_v his_o life_n by_o a_o unnatural_a death_n except_o only_o st._n john_n who_o escape_v it_o by_o miracle_n for_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o cauldron_n of_o boil_a oil._n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n their_o successor_n follow_v they_o in_o the_o like_o tragical_a death_n that_o st._n clemens_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n st._n simeon_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n crucify_v st._n ignatius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n expose_v to_o the_o lion_n st._n polycarp_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n burn_v at_o a_o stake_n yea_o that_o the_o christian_n for_o the_o most_o part_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n together_o meet_v with_o the_o most_o horrid_a death_n one_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o wild_a beast_n another_o be_v roast_v on_o a_o spit_n another_o be_v broil_v on_o a_o gridiron_n another_o have_v his_o flesh_n scrape_v off_o to_o the_o bone_n with_o sharp_a shell_n and_o salt_n and_o vinegar_n pour_v into_o his_o green_a wound_n and_o for_o one_o of_o their_o bloody_a persecutor_n a_o hundred_o christian_n may_v be_v find_v who_o die_v a_o terrible_a death_n these_o be_v the_o happy_a end_n that_o the_o first_o and_o best_a christian_n be_v bless_v with_o happy_a indeed_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o die_v and_o the_o bless_a reward_n they_o be_v crown_v with_o but_o none_o ever_o more_o unhappy_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world._n as_o they_o have_v be_v of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a have_v they_o have_v hope_n in_o this_o life_n only_o so_o if_o this_o note_n be_v true_a their_o hope_n can_v not_o have_v reach_v beyond_o it_o 3._o nor_o be_v this_o note_n more_o repugnant_a to_o scripture_n and_o experience_n than_o it_o be_v to_o reason_n one_o prime_n fundamental_a principle_n of_o reason_n be_v that_o contradiction_n can_v be_v true_a or_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v be_v and_o not_o be_v this_o we_o be_v as_o sure_a of_o as_o that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v or_o that_o any_o thing_n else_o be_v whatsoever_o therefore_o it_o be_v from_o whence_o it_o plain_o follow_v that_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a we_o be_v as_o sure_o that_o it_o be_v false_a and_o therefore_o that_o the_o note_v now_o under_o consideration_n be_v so_o because_o if_o it_o be_v true_a the_o most_o palpable_a contradiction_n will_v be_v true_a also_o of_o those_o many_o that_o offer_v themselves_o i_o shall_v mention_v a_o few_o as_o 1._o that_o that_o be_v a_o false_a church_n which_o be_v most_o certain_o the_o true_a church_n for_o if_o the_o burn_a alive_a of_o valens_n the_o arian_n emperor_n be_v a_o certain_a sign_n that_o the_o arian_n faith_n be_v false_a the_o burn_a alive_a of_o many_o of_o the_o first_o christian_n be_v as_o certain_a a_o note_n that_o the_o primitive_a faith_n be_v false_a if_o it_o follow_v that_o manichaeus_n be_v a_o damnable_a heretic_n because_o he_o be_v flay_v alive_a must_v we_o not_o conclude_v that_o st._n bartholomew_n be_v as_o bad_a and_o by_o consequence_n all_o the_o holy_a apostle_n because_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o death_n 2._o that_o a_o church_n remain_v the_o same_o without_o any_o change_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n or_o discipline_n may_v be_v to_o day_n a_o false_a church_n to_o morrow_n the_o only_a true_a church_n so_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n be_v a_o false_a one_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n fall_v backward_o and_o break_v his_o neck_n within_o a_o few_o day_n after_o when_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v against_o the_o philistine_n and_o they_o be_v smite_v with_o a_o foul_a disease_n of_o which_o they_o miserable_o die_v it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n again_o thus_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1656_o when_o a_o dreadful_a pestilence_n for_o that_o be_v one_o of_o bellarmin_n unhappy_a end_n sweep_v away_o three_o hundred_o thousand_o in_o three_o month_n time_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n and_o make_v great_a havoc_n at_o rome_n and_o genoa_n 426._o genoa_n athanas_n kircheri_fw-la scrutin_n physico-med_n contag_n luis_n quae_fw-la dicitur_fw-la pestis_fw-la p._n 426._o be_v a_o false_a church_n but_o in_o the_o year_n 1665_o when_o the_o like_a dreadful_a pestilence_n rage_v in_o london_n it_o become_v a_o true_a church_n again_o yea_o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o by_o this_o note_n it_o may_v be_v and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o the_o opposer_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o any_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n may_v have_v both_o of_o they_o unhappy_a and_o both_o of_o they_o happy_a ends._n now_o as_o the_o opposer_n have_v unhappy_a end_n it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o the_o defender_n have_v unhappy_a end_v it_o be_v by_o the_o four_o thing_n premise_v a_o false_a one_o again_o as_o the_o opposer_n have_v a_o happy_a end_n it_o be_v a_o false_a church_n as_o the_o defender_n have_v
visible_a p._n 63_o 64._o rome_n not_o always_o the_o principal_a seat_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 63._o avignon_n be_v for_o 70_o year_n where_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o whole_a court_n reside_v ibid._n several_a pope_n heretic_n p._n 64._o two_o pope_n at_o once_o contend_v for_o the_o chair_n and_o this_o for_o above_o 40_o year_n together_o and_o at_o one_o time_n 3_o pope_n p._n 64._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n compare_v with_o itself_o in_o reference_n to_o several_a doctrine_n p._n 65._o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o hold_v and_o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hold_v ibid._n her_o be_v the_o mother-church_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n ibid._n concern_v the_o apocryphal_a book_n ibid._n scripture_n and_o tradition_n p._n 66._o scripture_n in_o unknown_a tongue_n ibid._n merit_n p._n 67._o indulgence_n ibid._n purgatory_n p._n 68_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n ibid._n pray_v to_o saint_n p._n 68_o 69._o image-worship_n p._n 69._o sacrament_n the_o number_n of_o they_o ibid._n transubstantiation_n p._n 70._o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n ibid._n solitary_n mass_n p._n 70_o 71._o auricular_a confession_n p._n 71._o extreme_a unction_n ibid._n priest_n marriage_n ibid._n in_o all_o these_o particular_n room_n be_v not_o now_o what_o it_o have_v be_v the_o four_o note_n amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n the_o scripture_n first_o give_v we_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 73._o a_o true_a christian_a church_n profess_v the_o true_a christian_n faith._n p._n 74._o instead_o of_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v invent_v several_a note_n and_o character_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o or_o be_v not_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n ibid._n of_o which_o this_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n etc._n etc._n be_v one_o ibid._n what_o bellarmine_n understand_v by_o this_o note_n p._n 75._o in_o answer_n to_o he_o i._o it_o be_v show_v this_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ibid._n 1_o whether_o you_o consider_v the_o member_n thereof_o under_o either_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n or_o 2._o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o believer_n ibid._n satan_n kingdom_n more_o numerous_a than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ._n ibid._n the_o worshipper_n of_o mahomet_n exceed_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n in_o number_n since_o the_o romanist_n make_v themselves_o the_o only_a catholic_n p._n 76._o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n by_o this_o note_n ibid._n this_o note_n therefore_o no_o true_a character_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 77._o the_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n whence_o bellarmine_n pretend_v he_o fetch_v this_o note_n of_o he_o ibid._n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o variable_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o p._n 78._o this_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o in_o his_o explication_n of_o this_o note_n ibid._n the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n p._n 79._o many_o plain_a prophecy_n bring_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o ibid._n the_o cardinal_n citation_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n for_o the_o confirm_v this_o note_n consider_v p._n 80_o 81._o ii_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o do_v not_o advantage_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o that_o her_o pretention_n of_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n ibid._n 82_o to_o 85._o iii_o suppose_v again_o this_o note_n to_o be_v true_a it_o do_v the_o reform_a church_n a_o very_a great_a service_n in_o demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n p._n 85._o this_o demonstrate_v by_o two_o argument_n p._n 86_o 87._o 1._o that_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n the_o catholic_n church_n then_o be_v more_o we_o than_o now_o it_o be_v the_o romanist_n p._n 86._o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a agreement_n between_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n ibid._n this_o be_v evident_a by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n of_o each_o together_o ibid._n 2._o that_o upon_o computation_n the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v exceed_v not_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n of_o member_n p._n 87_o to_o 91._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 92._o the_o five_o note_n succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o examination_n of_o this_o note_n three_o thing_n be_v inquire_v into_o i._o how_o far_o this_o note_n may_v be_v necessary_a to_o any_o church_n p._n 94._o true_a and_o lawful_a pastor_n necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o pastoral_a power_n original_o from_o christ_n ibid._n power_n of_o ordination_n entrust_v with_o bishop_n the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ordinary_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n p._n 94_o 95._o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o bishop_n and_o its_o succession_n not_o interrupt_v in_o the_o reformation_n ibid._n 1._o obs_n though_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o complete_a constitution_n of_o a_o church_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v indispensable_a to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o so_o as_o to_o unchurch_n every_o place_n that_o want_v these_o 2._o obs_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o every_o church_n which_o firm_o presume_v upon_o this_o lawful_a and_o orderly_a succession_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v the_o record_n of_o its_o conveyance_n through_o every_o age_n and_o in_o every_o single_a person_n by_o who_o it_o have_v past_a p._n 95._o the_o ancient_n content_v themselves_o in_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o great_a see_v and_o mother-city_n as_o of_o rome_n alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n 3._o obs_n some_o irregularity_n and_o uncanonical_a proceed_n in_o time_n of_o great_a schism_n or_o public_a disturbance_n have_v be_v interpret_v for_o no_o interruption_n of_o this_o authentical_a succession_n p._n 97._o ii_o how_o far_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 98._o little_o leave_v upon_o record_n of_o many_o of_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_v their_o bare_a name_n ibid._n if_o heresy_n break_v the_o succession_n this_o be_v chargeable_a upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 99_o if_o schismatical_a intrusion_n can_v dissolve_v the_o order_n of_o succession_n this_o chargeable_a likewise_o on_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n viz._n felix_n the_o 2._o and_o vigilius_n ibid._n 1._o the_o case_n of_o the_o roman_a succession_n extreme_o change_v since_o the_o first_o time_n p._n 101._o no_o supremacy_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o more_o than_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n p._n 101_o 102._o 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o very_o favourable_a to_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n ibid._n the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n dispute_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n ibid._n 3._o their_o catechism_n make_v this_o no_o distinct_a order_n but_o only_o a_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n p._n 103._o iii_o how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n this_o will_v afford_v they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n ibid._n 1._o succession_n be_v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n p._n 104_o 105._o 2._o a_o unintterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v no_o warrantable_a ground_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o superiority_n over_o another_o church_n which_o have_v not_o so_o clear_a evidence_n thereof_o p._n 105_o 106._o the_o cardinal_n testimony_n out_o of_o st._n augustine_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o epiphanius_n examine_v p._n 107_o 108._o his_o inference_n from_o these_o citation_n about_o succession_n consider_v p._n 109_o 110._o the_o conclusion_n the_o six_o note_n agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v a_o true_a mark_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 113._o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v aside_o till_o it_o be_v first_o know_v whether_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o not_o p._n 114._o the_o true_a church_n only_o to_o be_v discover_v by_o the_o true_a faith._n p._n 115._o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n p._n 116._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wave_v particular_a controversy_n that_o may_v be_v make_v plain_a and_o evident_a to_o most_o capacity_n delight_n rather_o to_o run_v out_o into_o general_a controversy_n
of_o infallibility_n church-authority_n and_o resolution_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n etc._n etc._n p._n 119._o the_o reformation_n never_o do_v decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o its_o justification_n p._n 120_o 121._o luther_n and_o calvin_n misrepresent_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n p._n 122._o the_o apostolic_a church_n found_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o true_a standard_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n ibid._n the_o scripture_n the_o only_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o only_a certain_a account_n we_o have_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o most_o primitive_a church_n p._n 123._o several_a doctrine_n examine_v by_o antiquity_n 1._o supremacy_n not_o allow_v of_o by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o that_o of_o constantinople_n nor_o chalcedon_n p._n 125._o 2._o transubstantiation_n acknowledge_v by_o many_o of_o the_o schoolman_n not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n this_o doctrine_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n a_o little_a before_o berengarius_fw-la and_o not_o thorough_o understand_v even_o then_o by_o those_o who_o hold_v it_o p._n 126._o berengarius_fw-la his_o recantation_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o it_o p._n 127._o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n not_o declare_v to_o be_v seven_o by_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o mention_v by_o any_o author_n till_o 1100_o year_n after_o christ_n ibid._n necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n question_v by_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peter_n lombard_n p._n 128._o purgatory_n not_o mention_v by_o any_o ancient_a writer_n p._n 128_o 129._o indulgence_n receive_v very_o late_o into_o the_o church_n ibid._n prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a a_o ancient_a practice_n but_o no_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n never_o the_o practice_n any_o where_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ib._n worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o of_o image_n of_o no_o ancient_a date_n in_o the_o church_n ibid._n all_o these_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o reform_a that_o they_o be_v not_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v further_a prove_v 1._o from_o their_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la p._n 130._o 2._o from_o the_o correct_a or_o rather_o corrupt_v the_o father_n and_o the_o counterfeit_n so_o many_o false_a one_o and_o obtrude_a spurious_a author_n upon_o the_o world._n p._n 131_o 132._o 3._o from_o that_o little_a esteem_n and_o regard_n they_o too_o often_o have_v for_o antiquity_n when_o ever_o it_o make_v against_o they_o p._n 133._o 4._o from_o the_o determination_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n they_o stick_v to_o and_o which_o they_o prefer_v a_o thousand_o time_n before_o antiquity_n or_o the_o whole_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o seven_o note_n the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n unity_n no_o proper_a character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n because_o find_v upon_o society_n of_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a design_n p._n 137._o it_o be_v a_o good_a mark_n when_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n when_o the_o term_n of_o union_n be_v so_o ibid._n wherein_o this_o unity_n consist_v according_a to_o bellarmine_n p._n 138._o hereupon_o three_o thing_n be_v endeavour_v 1._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n forasmuch_o as_o union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n reason_n or_o antiquity_n p._n 140._o 1._o scripture_n p._n 141_o 142_o 143._o 2._o no_o foundation_n of_o it_o from_o reason_n p._n 144_o 145._o 3._o nor_o any_o colour_n from_o antiquity_n p._n 145_o to_o 149._o the_o cardinal_n argument_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o union_n from_o experience_n consider_v p._n 149._o 2._o the_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o among_o themselves_o as_o member_n no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 150._o 1._o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o any_o society_n may_v have_v as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o any_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a p._n 151._o 2._o as_o there_o may_v be_v this_o union_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n so_o its_o may_v not_o be_v within_o it_o ibid._n ii_o if_o unity_n be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o which_o be_v probable_o true_a of_o the_o first_o and_o most_o certain_o true_a of_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o cardinal_n unity_n p._n 152._o 1._o it_o be_v probable_a that_o there_o be_v not_o now_o nor_o have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n any_o true_a pope_n for_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o ibid._n 2._o neither_o be_v there_o that_o union_n in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o the_o papist_n or_o such_o a_o union_n of_o their_o member_n as_o shall_v prevent_v the_o break_n away_o of_o some_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o rest_n p._n 153._o not_o that_o wonderful_a agreement_n as_o the_o cardinal_n pretend_v in_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o their_o church_n nor_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o lawful_a council_n nor_o in_o those_o of_o their_o pope_n p._n 154._o several_a dispute_n between_o the_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n in_o many_o material_a point_n of_o doctrine_n between_o the_o thomist_n the_o scotist_n and_o occamist_n between_o the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o jansenist_n and_o molinist_n p._n 155_o 156._o bellarmin_n answer_n to_o all_o this_o viz._n they_o differ_v not_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o faith_n consider_v p._n 156_o 157._o the_o cardinal_n difference_n between_o the_o division_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o church_n and_o a_o division_n from_o heresy_n consider_v p._n 158._o if_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n viz._n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o a_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n ibid._n 1._o why_o be_v not_o these_o the_o mean_n of_o compose_v those_o controversy_n that_o carry_v we_o away_o from_o they_o ibid._n 2._o how_o can_v those_o be_v certain_a mean_n of_o compose_v controversy_n concern_v which_o even_o in_o their_o own_o church_n there_o be_v the_o great_a controversy_n of_o all_o p._n 159._o this_o large_o show_v from_o the_o learned_a launoy_n epistle_n to_o nicholas_n gatinaeus_fw-la upon_o this_o question_n p._n 160_o 161_o 162_o 163._o iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o protestant_n have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o p._n 164._o the_o true_a ground_n and_o notion_n of_o church-vnity_n represent_v ibid._n 1._o unity_n of_o submission_n to_o one_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ibid._n 2._o unity_n of_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o to_o the_o saint_n ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o summary_o expound_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n p._n 165._o 3._o unity_n of_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n ibid._n 4._o unity_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o institution_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n p._n 165._o 5._o unity_n of_o christian_a affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n ibid._n 6._o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o government_n ibid._n 7._o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god._n p._n 166._o some_o though_o not_o all_o of_o these_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n viz._n the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o profession_n of_o one_o faith_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a duty_n and_o privilege_n by_o one_o baptism_n ibid._n those_o particular_a church_n which_o keep_v unity_n in_o all_o these_o respect_v better_a than_o other_o do_v have_v the_o mark_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o those_o other_o have_v p._n 167._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o she_o hold_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o far_o maintain_v catholic_n unity_n ibid._n wherein_o she_o depart_v from_o catholic_n unity_n purity_n and_o charity_n show_v in_o several_a instance_n p._n 167_o 168._o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o chargeable_a on_o the_o same_o account_n ibid._n 168_o 169._o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unity_n of_o communion_n among_o themselves_o but_o not_o catholic_n unity_n of_o communion_n because_o the_o term_n of_o it_o be_v many_o of_o they_o unlawful_a and_o unjust_a p._n 170._o the_o contrary_a to_o which_o the_o true_a case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ibid._n 171._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 171_o
want_v for_o since_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o greek_a the_o armenian_a the_o abyssine_n the_o roman_a church_n he_o will_v find_v out_o which_o of_o these_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n which_o after_o all_o their_o shuffle_n they_o can_v never_o make_v any_o better_a sense_n of_o than_o which_o of_o the_o part_n be_v the_o whole_a since_o there_o be_v many_o unhappy_a dispute_n among_o christian_n the_o use_n of_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o a_o infallible_a church_n which_o must_v by_o a_o indisputable_a authority_n dictate_v to_o all_o other_o church_n what_o they_o must_v believe_v and_o what_o they_o must_v practice_v and_o to_o bring_v all_o other_o church_n into_o subjection_n they_o must_v find_v out_o a_o church_n out_o of_o who_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o pardon_n of_o sin_n no_o eternal_a life_n to_o be_v have_v that_o be_v in_o short_a the_o use_n of_o note_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_n church_n the_o only_a infallible_a oracle_n of_o faith_n and_o final_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o those_o other_o church_n which_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o she_o thus_o bellarmine_n unriddle_v this_o matter_n that_o the_o usefulness_n of_o this_o inquiry_n after_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v because_o in_o the_o true_a church_n only_o there_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n the_o true_a remission_n of_o sin_n the_o true_a hope_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n 1._o omnes_fw-la enim_fw-la ●onfitentur_fw-la in_o solâ_fw-la verâ_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la esse_fw-la veram_fw-la fidem_fw-la veram_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la remissionem_fw-la veram_fw-la spem_fw-la salutis_fw-la aeternâ_fw-la bell._n de_fw-fr notis_n eccl._n cap._n 1._o which_o be_v certain_o true_a that_o all_o this_o be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n without_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o no_o remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o hope_v of_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o then_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o true_a church_n but_o this_o will_v not_o do_v the_o business_n neither_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o know_v that_o every_o true_a church_n profess_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o we_o must_v find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n as_o can_v err_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o have_v authority_n to_o correct_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o we_o must_v allow_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n to_o be_v have_v in_o no_o other_o church_n but_o this_o which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o can_v make_v such_o a_o church_n the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o this_o church_n must_v be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o the_o cardinal_n be_v undo_v with_o all_o his_o note_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n the_o observe_v this_o give_v we_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n which_o be_v not_o what_o it_o be_v which_o make_v a_o church_n a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o christian_n to_o know_v that_o they_o may_v take_v care_n that_o nothing_o be_v want_v in_o their_o communion_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a use_n of_o note_n that_o i_o know_v of_o but_o the_o dispute_n be_v how_o among_o all_o the_o division_n of_o christendom_n we_o may_v find_v out_o that_o only_a true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n the_o only_a infallible_a guide_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o which_o alone_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n and_o salvation_n be_v make_v and_o by_o some_o note_n and_o character_n of_o such_o a_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o church_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v what_o the_o protestant_n intend_v in_o those_o note_n they_o give_v of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o show_v what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o be_v and_o constitution_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n for_o that_o and_o none_o else_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v all_o thing_n essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n the_o second_o be_v what_o the_o papist_n intend_v by_o their_o note_n of_o a_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o some_o brief_a remark_n upon_o both_o these_o way_n will_v abundant_o serve_v for_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o more_o particular_a examination_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a design_n of_o these_o paper_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o papist_n and_o protestant_n differ_v so_o much_o about_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n since_o the_o question_n which_o each_o of_o they_o intend_v to_o answer_v by_o their_o several_a note_n so_o vast_o differ_v when_o you_o ask_v a_o protestant_n what_o be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n he_o answer_v to_o that_o question_n what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n or_o what_o it_o be_v which_o make_v a_o church_n a_o true_a church_n that_o be_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v and_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a mark_n and_o property_n of_o a_o church_n when_o you_o ask_v a_o papist_n for_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n he_o answer_v to_o that_o question_n which_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o think_v to_o point_v you_o out_o to_o a_o true_a church_n by_o some_o external_a mark_n and_o sign_n without_o ever_o inquire_v what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o this_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n do_v according_a to_o his_o principle_n for_o he_o can_v know_v nothing_o of_o religion_n till_o he_o have_v find_v the_o church_n from_o which_o he_o must_v learn_v every_o thing_n else_o let_v we_o consider_v then_o which_o of_o these_o be_v most_o reasonable_a first_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o protestant_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a church_n such_o as_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n right_o and_o due_o administer_v by_o person_n right_o ordain_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostolical_a practice_n this_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a christian_a church_n without_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o christian_a sacrament_n which_o can_v be_v right_o administer_v but_o by_o church-officer_n right_o and_o due_o ordain_v the_o regular_a exercise_n of_o discipline_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o purity_n and_o good_a government_n of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o the_o protestant_n allege_v for_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o these_o be_v as_o infallible_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o humane_a nature_n be_v of_o a_o man_n for_o they_o be_v the_o essential_a principle_n of_o it_o by_o this_o every_o man_n may_v know_v whether_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o for_o where_o this_o be_v there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n where_o this_o be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n whatever_o other_o mark_n of_o a_o church_n there_o be_v and_o i_o know_v no_o other_o use_n of_o note_n but_o to_o find_v out_o what_o we_o seek_v for_o in_o answer_n to_o such_o note_n as_o these_o cardinal_z bellarmin_n object_n three_o thing_n 1._o that_o note_n whereby_o we_o will_v distinguish_v thing_n must_v not_o be_v common_a to_o other_o thing_n but_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o note_n as_o if_o you_o will_v describe_v a_o man_n to_o i_o who_o i_o never_o see_v so_o as_o that_o i_o may_v know_v he_o when_o i_o meet_v he_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v two_o hand_n or_o two_o eye_n etc._n etc._n because_o this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o men._n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o fault_n of_o these_o note_n for_o as_o for_o the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o truth_n or_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o sect_n at_o least_o in_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n all_o sect_n and_o profession_n of_o christian_n either_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o sacrament_n or_o at_o least_o think_v that_o they_o have_v so_o and_o therefore_o these_o mark_n can_v visible_o distinguish_v the_o true_a church_n from_o any_o other_o sect_n of_o
of_o this_o for_o all_o those_o article_n which_o be_v before_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n must_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v know_v before_o it_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o make_v the_o world_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n and_o from_o thence_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o we_o may_v add_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o not_o till_o then_o for_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n through_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o unite_v they_o into_o one_o mystical_a body_n so_o that_o we_o must_v know_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n before_o we_o can_v know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n mean_v and_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a then_o that_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v found_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n when_o we_o must_v first_o know_v all_o the_o great_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v any_o thing_n about_o a_o church_n this_o invert_v the_o order_n of_o our_o creed_n which_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v begin_v thus_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o apostle_n or_o those_o apostolical_a man_n who_o frame_v the_o creed_n will_v have_v put_v it_o so_o have_v they_o think_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n this_o short_a discourse_n i_o think_v be_v enough_o in_o general_a concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o shall_v leave_v the_o particular_a examination_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n to_o other_o hand_n which_o the_o reader_n may_v expect_v to_o follow_v in_o their_o order_n the_o end._n bellarmin_n first_o note_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n examine_v prima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la ipsum_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o christianorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la bellar._n cap._n 4._o de_fw-la notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la p._n 1477._o imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 8._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n rr._n in_o christo_n p._n ac_fw-la d._n d._n wilhelmo_n archiep._n cant._n a_o sacr._n dome_a that_o the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o truth_n so_o clear_a in_o itself_o so_o often_o and_o full_o prove_v by_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o reformation_n that_o it_o may_v just_o seem_v a_o wonder_n that_o any_o church_n which_o be_v not_o conscious_a to_o herself_o of_o any_o error_n and_o deviation_n from_o it_o shall_v refuse_v to_o put_v herself_o upon_o that_o trial_n this_o give_v be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n at_o first_o make_v it_o one_o and_o make_v it_o catholic_n according_a as_o this_o fare_v in_o any_o part_n or_o member_n of_o it_o be_v that_o church_n distinguish_v and_o denominate_v it_o will_v be_v true_a or_o false_a pure_a or_o corrupt_a sound_v or_o heretical_a according_a as_o the_o faith_n it_o hold_v bear_v a_o conformity_n or_o repugnance_n to_o the_o write_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o orthodox_n faith_n make_v a_o orthodox_n church_n but_o if_o her_o faith_n become_v taint_v and_o heterodox_n the_o church_n will_v be_v so_o too_o and_o shall_v it_o happen_v whole_o to_o apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v whole_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v notorious_o warp_a from_o truth_n decline_v the_o be_v examine_v and_o measure_v by_o this_o rule_n have_v indeed_o some_o reason_n to_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v so_o evident_o against_o she_o and_o endeavour_n to_o support_v herself_o with_o great_a name_n and_o swell_a title_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o so_o often_o hear_v of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n amplitude_n unity_n succession_n miracle_n prophecy_n and_o several_a other_o that_o their_o great_a cardinal_n set_v down_o as_o so_o many_o perpetual_a and_o never-failing_a mark_n and_o character_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n and_o to_o assert_v his_o own_o i_o shall_v in_o this_o short_a tract_n examine_v the_o first_o of_o these_o and_o that_o i_o may_v give_v it_o all_o the_o fair_a play_n imaginable_a endeavour_v to_o represent_v it_o in_o its_o full_a force_n and_o to_o its_o best_a advantage_n bellarmin_n make_v it_o thus_o to_o speak_v for_o itself_o the_o apostle_n in_o 1_o cor._n 3.4_o make_v it_o the_o sign_n and_o mark_v of_o schismatic_n to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n though_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o whether_o of_o paul_n or_o apollos_n or_o cephas_n and_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o orthodox_n church_n be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o conventicle_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o name_n of_o their_o first_o author_n and_o therefore_o since_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o all_o even_o her_o bitter_a adversary_n call_v catholic_n and_o the_o several_a sect_n of_o the_o reform_a after_o the_o name_n of_o their_o particular_a doctor_n as_o luther_n calvin_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o the_o like_a it_o follow_v that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sure_a undoubted_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o also_o that_o this_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o church_n this_o be_v his_o argument_n and_o as_o much_o as_o he_o value_v his_o church_n upon_o it_o i_o can_v see_v no_o more_o in_o it_o but_o this_o that_o because_o church_n profess_v the_o true_a orthodox_n faith_n be_v ancient_o style_v catholic_n therefore_o all_o that_o have_v be_v style_v catholic_n since_o be_v their_o faith_n what_o it_o will_v must_v be_v true_a and_o orthodox_n church_n and_o because_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v christian_n to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n though_o of_o never_o so_o great_a eminency_n in_o the_o church_n and_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o work_v of_o the_o ancient_n be_v real_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n that_o be_v so_o call_v as_o the_o valentinian_o marcionite_n montanist_n and_o other_o therefore_o all_o that_o in_o after-age_n shall_v be_v so_o nicknamed_a though_o out_o of_o malice_n and_o illwill_a by_o their_o enemy_n whilst_o they_o disow_v it_o themselves_o must_v go_v for_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n this_o be_v so_o weak_a a_o topick_n that_o i_o may_v just_o break_v off_o here_o have_v expose_v it_o sufficient_o by_o a_o bare_a represent_v of_o it_o yet_o for_o the_o reader_n be_v far_o information_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v proceed_v to_o show_v these_o three_o thing_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o will_v ever_o be_v a_o stand_a note_n of_o it_o ii_o that_o from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n iii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o etc._n etc._n and_o this_o as_o evident_o appear_v from_o their_o write_n and_o even_o from_o those_o testimony_n cite_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o in_o their_o time_n be_v general_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o when_o ever_o it_o be_v so_o it_o will_v be_v a_o infallible_a note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n himself_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o to_o the_o church_n contain_v in_o those_o write_n which_o they_o by_o
reform_v they_o call_v we_o the_o reform_a therefore_o we_o be_v reform_v be_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n as_o we_o call_v they_o catholic_n therefore_o they_o be_v catholic_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v those_o word_n of_o st._n austin_n cite_v by_o bellarmine_n 4._o contr._n epist_n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o to_o be_v understand_v that_o shall_v a_o stranger_n happen_v in_o any_o city_n to_o inquire_v even_o of_o a_o heretic_n where_o he_o may_v go_v to_o a_o catholic_n church_n the_o heretic_n will_v not_o dare_v to_o send_v he_o to_o his_o own_o house_n or_o oratory_n not_o that_o that_o heretic_n do_v believe_v that_o those_o that_o there_o be_v call_v catholic_n do_v hold_v the_o true_a catholic_n doctrine_n for_o than_o he_o can_v not_o have_v believe_v his_o own_o but_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o bare_a name_n of_o distinction_n he_o direct_v he_o to_o that_o assembly_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v so_o call_v st._n austin_n seem_v here_o to_o suppose_v a_o case_n as_o if_o a_o traveller_n enter_v into_o a_o city_n where_o both_o popish_a and_o reform_a church_n be_v allow_v and_o shall_v chance_v to_o meet_v a_o protestant_n and_o of_o he_o inquire_v the_o way_n to_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o he_o direct_v he_o to_o a_o popish_a one_o or_o a_o papist_n and_o of_o he_o inquire_v the_o way_n to_o a_o reform_a church_n and_o he_o direct_v he_o to_o a_o protestant_a one_o it_o will_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o do_v believe_v either_o church_n to_o answer_v and_o correspond_v with_o its_o name_n that_o the_o popish_a be_v catholic_n or_o the_o protestant_n reform_v but_o that_o they_o be_v word_n of_o vulgar_a use_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v know_v from_o one_o another_o but_o not_o the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a four_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n in_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v a_o sure_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o even_o when_o the_o name_n and_o thing_n be_v part_v it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o the_o christian_a church_n become_v miserable_o tear_v and_o rend_v asunder_o divide_v into_o many_o and_o some_o very_a great_a body_n all_o pretend_v to_o catholicism_n by_o what_o mark_v now_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v know_v not_o by_o the_o name_n sure_o when_o all_o party_n lay_v claim_v to_o it_o and_o the_o gross_a heretic_n such_o as_o the_o manichaean_o themselves_z as_o st._n austin_n tell_v we_o who_o have_v the_o least_o to_o show_v for_o it_o covet_v and_o glory_v in_o it_o have_v never_o any_o heretic_n or_o scismatic_o be_v style_v catholic_n nor_o ever_o any_o orthodox_n style_v heretic_n the_o greek_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v she_o a_o heretical_a one_o the_o donatist_n appropriate_v to_o themselves_o that_o ample_a title_n and_o yet_o st._n austin_n think_v they_o no_o better_a than_o shcismaticks_n the_o arrian_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o the_o orthodox_n homousian_o and_o athanasian_o but_o neither_o the_o one_o be_v the_o more_o nor_o the_o other_o the_o less_o catholic_n for_o what_o they_o be_v call_v truth_n be_v always_o the_o same_o and_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n remain_v unalterable_a let_v man_n fix_v on_o they_o what_o name_n they_o please_v by_o this_o rule_n than_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v know_v not_o because_o it_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n for_o that_o a_o church_n may_v do_v and_o yet_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n but_o because_o it_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o then_o though_o it_o be_v in_o name_n heretic_n it_o be_v in_o reality_n catholic_n this_o be_v lactantius_n rule_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a religion_n that_o church_n alone_o retinet_fw-la instir_v lib._n 4._o c._n ult_n sola_fw-la catholica_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la verum_fw-la cultum_fw-la retinet_fw-la say_v he_o be_v catholic_n that_o retain_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god._n and_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o dispute_n with_o the_o donatist_n where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a infallible_a judge_n 2._o non_fw-la audiamus_fw-la haec_fw-la dico_fw-la haec_fw-la dicis_fw-la sed_fw-la audiamus_fw-la haec_fw-la dicit_fw-la dominus_fw-la etc._n etc._n ibi_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la epist_n 166._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccl._n c._n 2._o among_o many_o other_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o have_v these_o word_n i_o say_v this_o and_o thou_o say_v that_o but_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 5._o again_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n in_o that_o age_n when_o all_o so_o call_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n corrupt_v in_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o sure_a brand_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n it_o must_v ever_o be_v so_o may_v not_o name_n and_o title_n be_v unjust_o and_o malicious_o impose_v if_o the_o church_n of_o the_o reform_a must_v go_v for_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n mere_o because_o they_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o man_n that_o be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o eminent_a instrument_n in_o that_o bless_a work_n as_o of_o lutheran_n calvinist_n zuinglians_n &_o the_o like_a be_v there_o not_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o several_a order_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o their_o particular_a founder_n as_o the_o benedictines_n franciscan_n dominican_n jansenist_n and_o molinist_n and_o other_o be_v esteem_v so_o too_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n the_o advantage_n of_o reason_n be_v on_o our_o side_n since_o the_o reform_a assume_v not_o those_o name_n to_o themselves_o and_o though_o they_o deserve_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o those_o man_n and_o with_o thankful_a heart_n embrace_v the_o reformation_n god_n be_v please_v by_o their_o ministry_n to_o make_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v they_o by_o no_o mean_n affect_v to_o be_v call_v after_o their_o name_n they_o own_v no_o name_n but_o christian_a or_o catholic_n when_o it_o signify_v person_n adhere_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n the_o other_o be_v nickname_n fasten_v on_o they_o by_o their_o adversary_n out_o of_o scorn_n or_o malice_n to_o represent_v they_o to_o the_o world_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a as_o so_o many_o schismatic_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o as_o have_v other_o leader_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o those_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v denominate_v from_o their_o particular_a founder_n give_v themselves_o those_o appellation_n seem_v to_o prefer_v they_o before_o that_o true_o catholic_n one_o of_o christian_n which_o while_n with_o some_o neglect_n they_o leave_v to_o the_o common_a people_n they_o glory_n and_o pride_n themselves_o in_o the_o other_o so_o that_o if_o this_o note_n of_o a_o heretic_n be_v valid_a it_o turn_v with_o great_a force_n against_o themselves_o who_o be_v real_o guilty_a of_o it_o and_o not_o against_o we_o who_o they_o will_v make_v guilty_a of_o it_o but_o be_v not_o iii_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o catholic_n faith_n or_o religion_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n whether_o she_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o or_o no_o will_v be_v best_a see_v by_o compare_v her_o doctrine_n in_o several_a point_n with_o that_o deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o leave_v upon_o record_n by_o his_o holy_a apostle_n for_o though_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o allow_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o whole_a and_o a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n yet_o they_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o grant_v that_o they_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o those_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n that_o be_v forbid_v by_o they_o be_v corruption_n and_o depravation_n of_o it_o let_v we_o then_o bring_v their_o faith_n to_o the_o touchstone_n how_o read_v thou_o the_o scripture_n say_v 1685._o see_v discourse_n of_o the_o object_n of_o religious_a worship_n 1685._o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v mat._n 4.10_o which_o word_n evident_o appropriate_v all_o kind_n and_o all_o degree_n of_o religious_a worship_n unto_o god_n they_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o devil_n temptation_n who_o require_v but_o the_o low_a degree_n the_o devil_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o right_n he_o have_v of_o dispose_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v only_o derivative_a not_o natural_a they_o be_v deliver_v to_o i_o at_o the_o same_o time_n confess_v himself_o not_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n and_o consequent_o can_v be_v suppose_v
as_o necessary_a a_o part_n as_o that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n for_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o continue_v to_o be_v as_o well_o as_o it_o have_v be_v it_o be_v not_o that_o church_n which_o duration_n be_v a_o note_n of_o again_o he_o have_v pass_v by_o that_o other_o property_n of_o his_o duration_n viz._n that_o it_o have_v be_v without_o interruption_n for_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o have_v continue_v but_o not_o without_o interruption_n it_o want_v another_o property_n of_o duration_n which_o always_o be_v be_v and_o always_o will_v be_v and_o be_v and_o will_v and_o must_v be_v such_o without_o interruption_n according_a to_o he_o he_o ii_o how_o far_o be_v duration_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n we_o grant_v that_o there_o shall_v always_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o final_o prevail_v against_o it_o so_o as_o utter_o to_o extinguish_v and_o destroy_v it_o and_o this_o we_o firm_o believe_v because_o christ_n have_v promise_v and_o undertake_v for_o it_o but_o though_o this_o be_v a_o promise_n and_o may_v support_v the_o church_n under_o the_o most_o doleful_a circumstance_n yet_o it_o be_v no_o note_n by_o which_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v out_o and_o distinguish_v from_o the_o false_a for_o beside_o that_o this_o promise_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o church_n and_o not_o to_o this_o or_o that_o church_n 1._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o note_n for_o a_o promise_n respect_v the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o a_o note_n respect_v the_o time_n present_a the_o thing_n promise_v may_v become_v a_o note_n when_o it_o be_v actual_o fulfil_v but_o till_o it_o be_v fulfil_v it_o can_v no_o more_o be_v a_o note_n than_o the_o future_a time_n be_v the_o present_a for_o what_o a_o promise_n be_v to_o the_o future_a that_o be_v a_o note_n to_o the_o present_a and_o do_v suppose_v the_o actual_a existence_n of_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v the_o note_n of_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o present_a case_n god_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o his_o church_n and_o preserve_v it_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o be_v the_o period_n of_o that_o duration_n be_v not_o to_o be_v accomplish_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n must_v come_v to_o a_o end_n before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o the_o church_n pretend_v to_o duration_n be_v the_o true_a church_n suppose_v we_o for_o once_o bellarmin_n church_n to_o have_v continue_v as_o he_o say_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 1577_o year_n after_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o a_o demonstration_n that_o it_o so_o long_o continue_v to_o be_v the_o same_o without_o interruption_n yet_o the_o time_n past_a be_v no_o proof_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o if_o the_o world_n shall_v continue_v 1577_o year_n after_o his_o time_n and_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o shall_v expire_v before_o that_o term_n the_o term_n of_o 1577_o year_n past_a will_v no_o more_o answer_v this_o character_n of_o perpetual_a duration_n than_o if_o it_o have_v endure_v but_o seven_o for_o as_o he_o say_v duration_n do_v contain_v in_o it_o all_o time_n and_o exclude_v none_o and_o consequent_o if_o there_o be_v a_o time_n or_o case_n when_o that_o duration_n be_v interrupt_v as_o i_o shall_v show_v it_o be_v and_o a_o time_n in_o which_o that_o church_n shall_v cease_v to_o be_v before_o time_n itself_o shall_v cease_v as_o it_o may_v for_o aught_o they_o can_v say_v against_o it_o then_o either_o their_o church_n will_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o duration_n not_o be_v the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o that_o duration_n include_v all_o time_n the_o future_a time_n can_v be_v no_o more_o exclude_v than_o the_o time_n past_a or_o present_a but_o since_o the_o future_a be_v uncapable_a of_o proof_n the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o it_o nor_o can_v duration_n be_v a_o note_n of_o it_o i_o grant_v indeed_o that_o if_o duration_n be_v a_o necessary_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n this_o may_v be_v a_o note_n by_o which_o those_o church_n that_o once_o be_v but_o be_v now_o utter_o extinguish_v may_v be_v conclude_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o this_o negative_a argument_n will_v neither_o be_v able_a to_o show_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n when_o there_o be_v several_a pretend_v to_o the_o like_a duration_n nor_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o reason_n before_o give_v viz._n that_o it_o respect_v the_o future_a succession_n as_o well_o as_o the_o past_a it_o can_v be_v no_o note_n till_o the_o time_n to_o come_v become_v present_a and_o the_o whole_a period_n of_o it_o be_v accomplish_v 2._o that_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o inseparable_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o season_n and_o case_n for_o what_o be_v a_o essential_a character_n of_o a_o thing_n belong_v to_o that_o thing_n whenever_o and_o wherever_o it_o be_v and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o season_n or_o case_n in_o which_o that_o note_n belong_v not_o to_o it_o that_o can_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o for_o instance_n the_o church_n in_o one_o house_n or_o city_n immediate_o after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n be_v as_o much_o a_o church_n from_o the_o first_o day_n it_o be_v so_o gather_v and_o have_v all_o the_o qualification_n of_o a_o church_n as_o it_o can_v have_v have_v it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o bellarmin_n and_o be_v existent_a 1577._o and_o yet_o that_o primitive_a church_n so_o constitute_v want_v this_o note_n of_o duration_n for_o it_o then_o but_o begin_v to_o be_v and_o if_o a_o person_n have_v be_v to_o inquire_v for_o the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o character_n and_o token_n and_o have_v be_v teach_v that_o that_o can_v be_v no_o church_n which_o want_v it_o he_o must_v have_v go_v from_o the_o upper_a room_n to_o the_o temple_n and_o have_v be_v not_o a_o christian_a but_o a_o jew_n so_o that_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o either_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n have_v not_o all_o the_o mark_v necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o true_a church_n and_o so_o indeed_o be_v no_o church_n or_o else_o that_o duration_n be_v not_o a_o inseparable_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o former_a inference_n be_v good_a because_o that_o which_o have_v not_o all_o the_o mark_v essential_o belong_v to_o the_o thing_n can_v be_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o but_o if_o that_o apostolical_a church_n have_v all_o the_o mark_v essential_o belong_v to_o a_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o want_v at_o that_o time_n this_o mark_n of_o duration_n than_o duration_n can_v be_v a_o essential_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n infer_v 3._o that_o which_o be_v a_o note_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v the_o note_n of_o and_o not_o common_a to_o other_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o that_o so_o bellarmin_n say_v cap._n 2._o but_o now_o this_o note_n of_o duration_n be_v common_a to_o other_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n to_o false_a church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a and_o so_o can_v be_v a_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o a_o note_n by_o which_o it_o be_v distinguish_v and_o to_o be_v certain_o know_v from_o the_o false_a suppose_v we_o that_o a_o person_n that_o have_v imbibe_v this_o principle_n be_v in_o quest_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o have_v be_v live_v when_o luther_n appear_v and_o have_v before_o he_o the_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o the_o armenian_n egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n in_o the_o east_n the_o numerous_a church_n of_o greece_n etc._n etc._n which_o pretend_v to_o a_o duration_n as_o good_a and_o sufficient_a as_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o the_o last_o of_o which_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o latin_a trid._n orat._n council_n trid._n and_o to_o which_o the_o latin_a church_n owe_v what_o it_o have_v how_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o determine_v where_o he_o shall_v fix_v ult_n de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n ult_n for_o to_o say_v as_o bellarmine_n do_v that_o they_o be_v heretic_n or_o schismatic_n and_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o example_n be_v lawful_o convict_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n in_o three_o full_a council_n that_o be_v 2do_fw-la de_fw-fr not._n c._n 9_o 9_o dico_fw-la 2do_fw-la council_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o make_v they_o not_o to_o
seven_o sacrament_n true_o and_o proper_o so_o and_o whosoever_o say_v there_o be_v more_o or_o few_o institute_v by_o christ_n be_v accurse_v trid._n sess_n 7._o can._n 1._o transubstantiation_n 13._o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n without_o change_v the_o species_n conc._n trid._n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n 14._o the_o people_n be_v forbid_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n trid._n sess_n 21._o c._n 1._o solitary_n mass_n 15._o solitary_n mass_n wherein_o the_o priest_n communicate_v alone_o be_v approve_v and_o commend_v and_o whosoever_o say_v they_o be_v unlawful_a and_o to_o be_v abrogate_a be_v accurse_v trid._n sess_n 22._o can._n 8._o auricular_a confession_n 16._o without_o particular_a confession_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n be_v neither_o forgiveness_n nor_o salvation_n to_o be_v obtain_v trid._n sess_n 14._o c._n 5._o can._n 6_o 7._o extreme_a unction_n 17._o extreme_a unction_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o to_o be_v administer_v when_o person_n be_v in_o imminent_a danger_n and_o last_o of_o all_o to_o be_v apply_v trid._n sess_n 14._o c._n 13._o priest_n marriage_n 18._o those_o that_o be_v in_o order_n may_v not_o marry_o and_o those_o that_o be_v marry_v may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o order_n conc._n late_a 1._o can._n 21._o &_o late_a 2._o can._n 6._o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hold_v 1._o before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n little_a regard_n be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o pope_n pius_n 2._o epist_n p._n 802._o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n call_v other_o apostolical_a and_o sister-churche_n 2._o for_o one_o bishop_n to_o set_v himself_o over_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o have_v all_o the_o rest_n in_o subjection_n to_o he_o be_v the_o pride_n lucifer_n and_o the_o fore-running_a of_o antichrist_n pope_n gregor_n 1._o epist_n 36._o 3._o st._n jerom_n who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n say_v that_o though_o tobias_n judith_n and_o maccabee_n etc._n etc._n be_v read_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o receive_v as_o canonical_a scripture_n prologue_n proverb_n and_o pope_n gregory_n 1_o quote_v the_o maccabee_n excuse_n himself_o for_o produce_v a_o testimony_n out_o of_o a_o book_n not_o canonical_a we_o do_v not_o amiss_o etc._n etc._n moral_a in_o job_n l._n 19_o c._n 13._o 4._o gregory_n 1._o say_v all_o thing_n which_o edify_v and_o instruct_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o the_o teacher_n may_v present_o teach_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a in_o ezek._n hom._n l._n 1._o c._n 8._o de_fw-fr cur._n past_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o 5._o pope_n gregory_n the_o 9th_o an._n 1227._o declare_v the_o not_o know_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o truth_n itself_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o error_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o all_o man_n to_o read_v or_o hear_v they_o epist_n ad_fw-la germ._n archiep_n constant_n apud_fw-la m._n paris_n hen._n 3._o 6._o gregory_n 1._o say_v that_o the_o best_a of_o man_n will_v find_v no_o merit_n in_o their_o best_a action_n and_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o high_a virtue_n he_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n not_o by_o merit_n but_o by_o pardon_n moral_a l._n 9_o c._n 11._o and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v i_o pray_v to_o be_v save_v not_o trust_v to_o my_o merit_n but_o presume_v to_o obtain_v that_o by_o thy_o mercy_n alone_o which_o i_o hope_v not_o for_o by_o my_o merit_n in_o 1_o psal_n poenit_fw-la 7._o fisher_n bp_o of_o rochester_n in_o hen._n 8th_n time_n say_v the_o use_n of_o indulgence_n seem_v to_o be_v late_o in_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o the_o recital_n of_o this_o testimony_n polydore_n virgil_n add_v which_o be_v thing_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n you_o may_v expect_v they_o more_o certain_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n de_fw-fr invent._n l._n 8._o c._n 1._o cardinal_n cajetan_n say_v there_o be_v no_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n greek_n or_o latin_a that_o bring_v they_o to_o our_o knowledge_n opusc_n 15._o c._n 1._o 8._o bp._n fisher_n say_v there_o be_v none_o or_o very_o rare_a mention_n of_o purgatory_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n roff._n contr_n luther_n art._n 18._o and_o pope_n gregory_n 1._o say_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n either_o the_o good_a or_o evil_a spirit_n seize_v upon_o the_o soul_n and_o keep_v it_o for_o ever_o with_o it_o without_o any_o change_n moral_a in_o job_n l._n 8._o c._n 8._o vid._n vindication_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o some_o late_a paper_n pag._n 76._o 9_o bellarmine_n acknowledge_v that_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n both_o in_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n the_o people_n be_v wont_a to_o answer_v in_o divine_a office_n de_fw-fr verb._n l._n 2._o cap._n 16._o 16._o sed_fw-la neque_fw-la vid._n discourse_v concern_v celebration_n of_o divine_a service_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n p._n 46_o 47_o 48._o 10._o irenaeus_n bp_o of_o lion_n say_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o church_n do_v nothing_o by_o invocation_n of_o angel_n but_o direct_v her_o prayer_n to_o god_n which_o have_v make_v all_o and_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o time_n of_o lombard_n and_o scotus_n as_o it_o be_v now_o the_o one_o of_o which_o say_v it_o be_v not_o incredible_a the_o saint_n do_v hear_v what_o we_o say_v and_o the_o latter_a it_o be_v probable_a god_n do_v reveal_v our_o prayer_n lomb._n sent._n lib._n 4._o dist_n 45._o scot._n in_o 4_o dist_n q._n 45._o 11._o pope_n gregory_n i_o after_o he_o have_v allow_v image_n in_o temple_n for_o information_n of_o the_o ignorant_a do_v profess_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o ad_fw-la serenum_fw-la &_o registr_n epist_n l._n 9_o ep._n 9_o etc._n etc._n 12._o cassander_n a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v we_o shall_v not_o likely_o find_v any_o before_o pet._n lombard_n who_o live_v about_o 1130_o that_o do_v define_v the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n art._n 13._o 13._o de_fw-fr num_fw-la sacr._n and_o particular_o alex._n hales_n the_o famous_a schoolman_n say_v that_o confirmation_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n by_o the_o meldensian_a council_n par._n 4._o q._n 9_o m._n 1._o 13._o pope_n gelasius_n say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n cease_v not_o or_o perish_v not_o gelas_n count_v eutych_n gregory_n i._o say_v that_o our_o body_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n be_v nourish_v by_o the_o eucharist_n sacram._n 16._o kal._n mar._n &_o in_o 6._o psal_n poenit_fw-la 14._o pope_n gelasius_n declare_v either_o let_v they_o receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o let_v they_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o divide_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n de_fw-fr consecr_n dist_n 2._o comperimus_fw-la and_o pope_n gregory_n i._o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v the_o constant_a practice_n for_o the_o people_n to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n sacram._n in_o quadrag_n tr._n 3._o vid._n vindication_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o some_o paper_n p._n 75._o 15._o anacletus_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v decree_v that_o all_o present_a shall_v communicate_v or_o else_o shall_v be_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n do_v order_n and_o the_o holy_a church_n or_o rome_n observe_v par._n 3._o dist_n 1._o episcop_n &_o 2._o peracta_fw-la gregory_n i._o forbid_v the_o priest_n to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n alone_o greg._n lib._n capital_n cap._n 7._o apud_fw-la cassand_n liturg._n c._n 33._o 16._o this_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n gelasius_n or_o pope_n gregory_n i._n vid._n vindication_n of_o the_o answer_n p._n 73._o 17._o in_o gregory_n the_o first_o be_v time_n it_o be_v use_v in_o order_n to_o recovery_n and_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v give_v after_o it_o sacram._n p._n 253._o vid._n vindicat._n of_o the_o answ_n p._n 77._o 18._o to_o marry_v be_v a_o privilege_n belong_v to_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o as_o other_o so_o cassander_n consult_v art._n 23._o polyd._n virg._n invent._n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o by_o this_o parallel_n thus_o far_o draw_v betwixt_o the_o ancient_n and_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o judge_n of_o the_o immutability_n and_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v consistent_a with_o it_o than_o one_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n can_v be_v reconcile_v to_o another_o or_o than_o infallibility_n can_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o have_v actual_o err_v to_o find_v fallible_a church_n mistake_v and_o at_o some_o time_n to_o vary_v
from_o themselves_o be_v consistent_a with_o their_o nature_n and_o for_o all_o which_o if_o the_o error_n be_v not_o fundamental_a they_o be_v church_n still_o but_o to_o find_v error_n and_o contradiction_n in_o a_o infallible_a church_n be_v to_o confound_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n to_o give_v the_o infallible_a church_n no_o advantage_n over_o the_o fallible_a and_o to_o expose_v the_o person_n that_o betake_v themselves_o to_o that_o shelter_n to_o all_o the_o disquietude_n uncertainty_n and_o disappointment_n of_o ignorance_n and_o error_n for_o what_o be_v the_o usual_a reason_n give_v for_o forsake_v other_o church_n but_o because_o they_o be_v fallible_a what_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o they_o go_v over_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o because_o she_o be_v as_o they_o be_v make_v to_o believe_v infallible_a but_o if_o with_o her_o infallibility_n she_o have_v mistake_v if_o with_o her_o certainty_n she_o contradict_v herself_o if_o she_o be_v one_o thing_n in_o one_o age_n and_o another_o in_o another_o then_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n to_o quit_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o there_o be_v to_o embrace_v it_o and_o such_o person_n must_v either_o be_v content_v with_o a_o church_n that_o be_v fallible_a or_o be_v of_o none_o the_o end_n pag._n 63._o marg._n lin_v ult_n read_v in_o apoc._n 17._o 5._o london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o four_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n quarta_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la amplitudo_fw-la sive_fw-la multitudo_fw-la &_o varietas_fw-la credentium_fw-la bellarm._n l._n four_o c._n seven_o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 27._o 1687._o gvil._n needham_n we_o can_v very_o willing_o appeal_v to_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o be_v they_o unconcern_v whether_o a_o plain_a proof_n can_v be_v give_v of_o a_o baffle_v cause_n in_o a_o controversy_n relate_v to_o any_o point_n of_o reveal_v religion_n than_o for_o the_o assertor_n of_o it_o to_o decline_v maintain_v it_o by_o those_o book_n which_o alone_o can_v acquaint_v we_o with_o divine_a revelation_n but_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o the_o romanist_n be_v high_o chargeable_a upon_o this_o account_n in_o their_o endeavour_n to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n they_o need_v not_o be_v tell_v that_o we_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o our_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n and_o they_o and_o we_o be_v agree_v that_o that_o only_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a church_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a christian_a a_o faith_n and_o therefore_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o shall_v not_o be_v aware_a that_o the_o best_a way_n to_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o those_o who_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_n church_n have_v it_o real_o belong_v to_o they_o be_v to_o examine_v their_o faith_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o imagine_v they_o can_v think_v to_o be_v so_o imperfect_a a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o believe_v it_o a_o justifiable_a thing_n to_o be_v so_o averse_a to_o this_o method_n as_o we_o have_v ever_o find_v they_o be_v this_o we_o of_o the_o reformation_n have_v always_o stick_v to_o and_o we_o be_v desirous_a of_o nothing_o more_o than_o that_o it_o may_v be_v try_v by_o the_o faith_n we_o profess_v whether_o we_o be_v sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o soundness_n of_o our_o faith_n may_v be_v try_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o instead_o of_o take_v this_o course_n those_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v invent_v and_o do_v insist_v on_o a_o company_n of_o note_n and_o character_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v either_o not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o or_o be_v far_o from_o be_v plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n have_v this_o be_v our_o practice_n i_o appeal_v to_o their_o own_o conscience_n whether_o they_o can_v have_v impute_v it_o to_o a_o better_a cause_n than_o our_o be_v conscious_a to_o ourselves_o of_o the_o disagreeableness_n of_o our_o faith_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n and_o our_o not_o dare_v to_o have_v it_o bring_v to_o this_o touchstone_n of_o this_o sort_n of_o note_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n have_v give_v we_o no_o few_o than_o fifteen_o among_o which_o he_o can_v afford_v no_o place_n to_o this_o note_n of_o we_o though_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o the_o light_n that_o this_o one_o alone_n will_v have_v signify_v much_o more_o to_o his_o purpose_n than_o all_o that_o long_a bead-roul_n put_v together_o the_o design_n of_o this_o discourse_n be_v to_o examine_v his_o four_o note_n viz._n amplitudo_fw-la sive_fw-la multitudo_fw-la &_o varietas_fw-la credentium_fw-la amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n and_o how_o far_o he_o make_v it_o to_o extend_v his_o next_o word_n inform_v we_o viz._n ecclesia_fw-la enim_fw-la verè_fw-la catholica_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la debet_fw-la amplecti_fw-la omne_fw-la tempora_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la omne_fw-la loca_fw-la omnes_fw-la nationes_fw-la omne_fw-la hominum_fw-la genera_n the_o true_o catholic_n church_n ought_v not_o only_o to_o comprehend_v all_o age_n but_o also_o all_o place_n all_o nation_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o men._n and_o first_o he_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n second_o to_o make_v it_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o she_o alone_o three_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o those_o particular_o who_o call_v themselves_o the_o reform_a church_n can_v lay_v no_o claim_n to_o it_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v my_o business_n first_o to_o show_v that_o this_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o second_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v however_o gain_v nothing_o by_o it_o as_o to_o her_o pretention_n nor_o the_o reform_a church_n lose_v any_o thing_n nay_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o will_v quite_o overthrow_v her_o pretention_n of_o be_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o do_v the_o reform_a church_n as_o great_a service_n as_o her_o prejudice_n first_o i_o will_v brief_o show_v that_o this_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n by_o a_o note_n be_v understand_v a_o distinguish_a character_n but_o this_o be_v such_o a_o character_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o no_o one_o can_v less_o distinguish_v it_o and_o that_o whether_o we_o consider_v the_o member_n thereof_o under_o either_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n or_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o believer_n consider_v they_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n kingdom_n be_v far_o from_o be_v distinguishable_a as_o such_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n which_o be_v always_o incomparable_o more_o numerous_a or_o from_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o consist_v of_o idolatrous_a pagan_n what_o romanist_n can_v boast_v of_o his_o church_n in_o reference_n to_o this_o note_n as_o demetrius_n the_o silver-smith_n do_v of_o his_o diana_n when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o asia_n and_o the_o world_n worship_v she_o nor_o can_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o number_n of_o its_o member_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o worshipper_n of_o that_o great_a impostor_n mahomet_n which_o the_o son_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v especial_o grant_v to_o be_v far_o exceed_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n in_o number_n since_o they_o make_v themselves_o the_o only_a catholic_n again_o consider_v they_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o believer_n there_o be_v a_o age_n in_o which_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n can_v not_o be_v distinguish_v from_o heretic_n by_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o number_n who_o the_o romanist_n will_v not_o admit_v to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o sense_n for_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o arrianism_n ingenuit_fw-la orbis_n &_o mirabatur_fw-la &c._n &c._n the_o world_n lament_v and_o wonder_v to_o find_v itself_o turn_v arrian_n say_v st._n hierom._n and_o it_o become_v a_o proverb_n athanasius_n against_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n against_o athanasius_n and_o last_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v thus_o distinguish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n i_o wish_v our_o adversary_n can_v impartial_o consider_v who_o note_n that_o of_o have_v power_n give_v he_o over_o all_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o nation_n be_v most_o likely_a to_o be_v 13.7_o apoc._n 13.7_o and_o who_o it_o be_v that_o be_v describe_v by_o sit_v as_o upon_o seven_o hill_n so_o upon_o many_o water_n 17.1_o chap._n 17.1_o which_o water_n be_v peoples_n and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n 15._o verse_n 15._o and_o tongue_n these_o
thing_n consider_v nothing_o be_v more_o apparent_a than_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o body_n of_o man_n or_o of_o professor_n of_o christianity_n by_o the_o largeness_n of_o its_o extent_n or_o the_o numerousness_n of_o its_o member_n and_o therefore_o that_o a_o true_a note_n thereof_o can_v result_v from_o these_o and_o beside_o a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v essential_a to_o it_o must_v belong_v thereto_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o but_o how_o can_v amplitude_n or_o multitude_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o call_v it_o a_o little_a flock_n and_o say_v straight_o be_v the_o gate_n and_o narrow_a be_v the_o way_n that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o etc._n etc._n but_o bellarmin_n pretend_v to_o fetch_v this_o note_n of_o his_o out_o of_o the_o bible_n and_o not_o only_o to_o be_v behold_v to_o vincensius_fw-la lyrinensis_n for_o it_o who_o he_o first_o cite_v in_o favour_n of_o it_o though_o little_a to_o his_o purpose_n as_o will_v be_v see_v anon_o the_o text_n he_o produce_v be_v four_o two_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o two_o in_o the_o new._n those_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v psal_n 2.8_o where_o god_n the_o father_n promise_v his_o son_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o the_o heathen_a for_o his_o inheritance_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o possession_n and_o psal_n 72.8_o where_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o christ_n shall_v have_v dominion_n from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o river_n unto_o the_o end_v of_o the_o earth_n those_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v luke_n 24.47_o where_o our_o lord_n declare_v that_o repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n among_o all_o nation_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o act_v 1.8_o where_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v receive_v power_n after_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v come_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o he_o both_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o all_o judea_n and_o in_o samaria_n and_o unto_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o these_o text_n do_v prove_v that_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n shall_v be_v a_o very_a vast_a multitude_n and_o that_o its_o amplitude_n shall_v even_o extend_v over_o all_o the_o world._n but_o nevertheless_o 1._o it_o do_v not_o from_o hence_o follow_v that_o the_o conjunction_n of_o amplitude_n and_o multitude_n do_v make_v a_o note_n or_o distinguish_a character_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v it_o belong_v thereto_o as_o a_o attribute_n and_o another_o that_o it_o be_v appropriate_v to_o it_o as_o a_o note_n that_o may_v be_v even_o essential_a to_o a_o thing_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o a_o note_n of_o distinction_n or_o peculiar_a property_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v know_v from_o all_o other_o thing_n the_o power_n of_o sensation_n be_v essential_a to_o a_o man_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o be_v not_o distinguishable_a thereby_o from_o a_o beast_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o what_o have_v be_v discourse_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n nor_o of_o antichrist_n nor_o from_o erroneous_a sect_n by_o amplitude_n and_o multitude_n and_o that_o these_o together_o or_o apart_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n since_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o as_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v without_o they_o both_o 2._o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o variable_a state_n and_o condition_n thereof_o since_o it_o have_v have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n its_o ebb_n and_o flow_v and_o have_v have_v sometime_o large_a and_o other_o time_n strait_o and_o narrow_a bound_n this_o the_o cardinal_n be_v aware_a of_o and_o therefore_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o his_o note_n he_o say_v that_o although_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o necessary_o to_o be_v in_o all_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n yet_o now_o it_o ought_v necessary_o to_o be_v or_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o even_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o mean_v the_o protestant_n that_o the_o church_n be_v now_o in_o her_o old_a age_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v past_o grow_v by_o the_o way_n though_o all_o his_o heretic_n no_o doubt_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o church_n have_v daily_o grow_v elder_a and_o elder_a yet_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o he_o have_v find_v assert_v that_o she_o be_v now_o arrive_v at_o old_a age._n but_o it_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v grant_v he_o that_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o grow_v so_o old_a as_o to_o be_v past_o grow_v or_o to_o have_v a_o period_n put_v to_o its_o time_n of_o increase_v and_o therefore_o i_o add_v 3._o that_o we_o have_v great_a assurance_n that_o the_o church_n hitherto_o have_v not_o deserve_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o amplitude_n and_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n for_o there_o be_v very_o many_o plain_a prophecy_n from_o whence_o this_o may_v certain_o be_v conclude_v which_o all_o that_o without_o prejudice_n consider_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v satisfy_v have_v not_o hitherto_o be_v accomplish_v namely_o those_o which_o have_v reference_n to_o the_o call_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o most_o plentiful_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o perfect_a rest_n from_o persecution_n and_o universal_a peace_n with_o the_o most_o wonderful_a outward_a prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v i_o say_v abundance_n of_o the_o plain_a prediction_n and_o promise_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o the_o church_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o experiment_v the_o performance_n of_o and_o they_o be_v express_v in_o such_o word_n as_o that_o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v believe_v that_o those_o great_a thing_n which_o god_n have_v heretofore_o do_v for_o his_o church_n either_o jewish_a or_o christian_a be_v no_o better_o than_o type_n and_o emblem_n of_o what_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v in_o his_o appoint_a time_n among_o those_o prediction_n and_o promise_n the_o reader_n may_v consult_v these_o follow_v which_o be_v but_o a_o few_o in_o companion_n of_o the_o whole_a number_n viz._n in_o the_o old_a testament_n psal_n 22.27_o to_o 31._o isa_n 2.1_o to_o 6._o chap._n 11._o throughout_o jer._n 32.37_o to_o 43._o chap._n 33.7_o to_o the_o end_n dan._n 7.13_o 14._o and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n mat._n 24.14_o rom._n 11.12_o and_o ver_fw-la 25_o to_o 33.2_o cor._n 3.15_o 16._o apoc._n 20.1_o to_o 7._o though_o the_o fulfil_n of_o these_o scripture_n have_v be_v defer_v for_o so_o many_o age_n yet_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v so_o glorious_a a_o increase_n of_o his_o church_n with_o the_o other_o unspeakable_a blessing_n now_o mention_v and_o will_v fulfil_v they_o when_o the_o time_n be_v come_v which_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n know_v to_o be_v the_o fit_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o thus_o much_o may_v suffice_v to_o be_v say_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v prove_v this_o note_n by_o scripture_n as_o to_o those_o word_n in_o the_o next_o place_n of_o vincensius_fw-la lyrinensis_n in_o his_o commonitorium_fw-la which_o he_o produce_v for_o the_o confirm_v thereof_o viz._n eos_n propriè_fw-la esse_fw-la catholicos_fw-la qui_fw-la tenent_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la those_o be_v proper_o catholic_n who_o hold_v that_o which_o have_v be_v always_o every_o where_o and_o by_o all_o believe_v i_o answer_v 1._o that_o vincensius_fw-la do_v not_o pretend_v to_o give_v we_o in_o these_o word_n a_o note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o of_o such_o a_o christian_a this_o be_v evident_a at_o first_o sight_n and_o so_o be_v this_o 2._o whereas_o he_o make_v it_o the_o character_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_n to_o hold_v what_o have_v be_v believe_v semper_fw-la ubique_fw-la &_o omnibus_fw-la it_o can_v be_v hence_o infer_v that_o he_o believe_v amplitude_n or_o a_o multitude_n of_o believer_n to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o a_o attribute_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o much_o less_o a_o note_n 3._o if_o these_o word_n lay_v down_o a_o true_a note_n of_o a_o catholic_n christian_n than_o no_o body_n of_o christian_n can_v be_v
those_o bishop_n who_o shall_v so_o do_v without_o exception_n forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n be_v as_o plain_a a_o proof_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o his_o time_n do_v not_o look_v on_o themselves_o as_o have_v a_o primacy_n over_o all_o church_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o think_v to_o include_v the_o catholic_n church_n or_o to_o be_v any_o more_o than_o one_o part_n thereof_o this_o i_o say_v be_v manifest_a from_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n viz._n let_v the_o ancient_a custom_n be_v preserve_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o like_a custom_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v then_o the_o same_o uncontrollable_a power_n in_o his_o large_a jurisdiction_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o that_o council_n know_v nothing_o of_o this_o bishop_n have_v any_o power_n over_o the_o alexandrian_a and_o much_o less_o over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n nor_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o certain_a than_o that_o the_o mere_a superiority_n of_o honour_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v found_v on_o no_o divine_a right_n but_o only_o on_o that_o city_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o as_o the_o second_o general_n council_n viz._n that_o of_o constantinople_n decree_v in_o its_o three_o canon_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o privilege_n of_o honour_n next_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o its_o be_v the_o imperial_a city_n and_o therefore_o call_v new_a rome_n so_o in_o the_o twenty_o eight_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o general_n council_n viz._n that_o of_o chalcedon_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a case_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v undertake_v to_o prove_v from_o any_o say_n of_o the_o ancient_n for_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n at_o least_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v repute_v to_o be_v the_o same_o and_o consequent_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o say_v of_o the_o amplitude_n of_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o church_n must_v necessary_o make_v as_o sad_a work_n of_o it_o as_o bellarmin_n have_v here_o do_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v apparent_a too_o that_o no_o service_n can_v be_v do_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o this_o note_n as_o to_o her_o pretention_n of_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v likewise_o follow_v that_o no_o prejudice_n can_v from_o thence_o accrue_v to_o the_o reform_a church_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o 2._o this_o note_n be_v it_o a_o true_a one_o will_v be_v destructive_a to_o that_o her_o pretence_n and_o do_v the_o reform_a church_n great_a service_n viz._n in_o demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o also_o may_v be_v conclude_v from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v but_o it_o will_v be_v make_v more_o evident_a by_o these_o follow_a consideration_n 1._o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v as_o ample_a a_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n for_o some_o of_o the_o first_o age_n as_o bellarmin_n contend_v for_o this_o will_v far_v more_o redound_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o our_o church_n of_o the_o reformation_n be_v amplitude_n a_o distinguish_a property_n of_o the_o church_n than_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n because_o that_o church_n then_o be_v more_o we_o than_o now_o it_o be_v the_o romanist_n for_o there_o can_v scarce_o be_v a_o great_a disagreement_n in_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n between_o any_o two_o christian_a church_n than_o there_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n be_v between_o the_o same_o church_n as_o she_o be_v then_o and_o be_v now_o but_o the_o agreement_n be_v as_o great_a between_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o our_o church_n and_o especial_o between_o she_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o our_o adversary_n can_v not_o but_o see_v will_v they_o impartial_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n of_o each_o together_o and_o the_o only_a quarrel_n they_o have_v with_o we_o be_v that_o we_o will_v not_o admit_v more_o into_o our_o creed_n than_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o first_o age_n do_v into_o they_o and_o that_o we_o worship_n god_n only_o by_o the_o alone_a mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o they_o do_v that_o our_o laity_n partake_v of_o the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n as_o they_o do_v and_o in_o short_a that_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v a_o complete_a rule_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v every_o where_o believe_v to_o be_v by_o the_o primitive_a catholic_n and_o that_o we_o will_v not_o receive_v into_o our_o worship_n the_o roman_a novelty_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v utter_o unknown_a to_o both_o the_o roman_a and_o all_o other_o church_n in_o those_o age_n now_o whereas_o the_o cardinal_n will_v have_v it_o observe_v for_o the_o better_a explain_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o note_n that_o if_o one_o province_n alone_o shall_v retain_v the_o true_a faith_n it_o may_v proper_o be_v call_v the_o catholic_n church_n so_o long_o as_o its_o faith_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o have_v prevail_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n we_o desire_v no_o great_a advantage_n to_o our_o church_n and_o all_o other_o in_o communion_n with_o she_o since_o these_o and_o those_o church_n which_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n be_v extend_v all_o over_o the_o then_o know_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v agree_v in_o much_o more_o than_o all_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith._n 2._o it_o have_v be_v estimate_v upon_o computation_n that_o the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v exceed_v not_o much_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n of_o member_n especial_o since_o italy_n spain_n inquiry_n see_v the_o preface_n to_o brerewood_n inquiry_n and_o portugal_n be_v detain_v in_o the_o romish_a religion_n not_o by_o choice_n or_o judgement_n but_o by_o ignorance_n and_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o inquisition_n but_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bear_v not_o the_o least_o proportion_n upon_o those_o account_n with_o these_o church_n consider_v in_o conjunction_n with_o that_o part_n of_o christendom_n which_o agree_v with_o they_o as_o in_o all_o the_o main_a point_n of_o christianity_n so_o in_o refuse_v subjection_n to_o that_o church_n and_o in_o most_o of_o those_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o we_o condemn_v in_o she_o as_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n or_o as_o not_o found_v thereon_o and_o yet_o make_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o she_o and_o not_o teach_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o that_o shall_v all_o the_o church_n which_o deny_v that_o of_o rome_n to_o have_v any_o authority_n over_o they_o deal_v with_o she_o as_o she_o have_v deal_v with_o they_o and_o pronounce_v she_o to_o have_v nothing_o more_o leave_v she_o than_o the_o mere_a name_n of_o a_o church_n this_o her_o note_n will_v be_v a_o unanswerable_a objection_n against_o her_o be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a church_n on_o supposition_n that_o as_o she_o hold_v of_o two_o party_n of_o christian_n reject_v communion_n with_o and_o unchurch_v each_o other_o but_o one_o of_o they_o can_v be_v a_o true_a church_n that_o so_o large_a a_o part_n of_o christendom_n i_o say_v agree_v with_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o all_o the_o grand_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o chief_a of_o those_o wherein_o they_o be_v at_o variance_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o make_v the_o whole_a a_o incomparable_o great_a body_n of_o believer_n than_o all_o those_o together_o who_o own_o that_o church_n for_o their_o mother_n be_v so_o notorious_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a our_o adversary_n shall_v dispute_v it_o the_o cardinal_n indeed_o tell_v we_o on_o this_o note_n that_o beside_o all_o italy_n and_o spain_n and_o almost_o all_o france_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n possess_v and_o beside_o germany_n england_n poland_n bohemia_n hungary_n greece_n syria_n aethiopia_n egypt_n in_o which_o many_o catholic_n be_v find_v even_o in_o the_o new_a world_n viz._n america_n she_o have_v church_n without_o the_o mixture_n of_o heretic_n and_o we_o can_v reply_v that_o beside_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n in_o which_o protestancy_n be_v the_o national_a religion_n and_o in_o the_o two_o former_a of_o which_o the_o number_n
church_n have_v they_o judge_v it_o necessary_a when_o within_o a_o very_a few_o century_n and_o not_o through_o very_a many_o person_n the_o old_a may_v have_v be_v trace_v to_o its_o first_o original_a but_o much_o different_a be_v the_o case_n now_o after_o so_o many_o change_n of_o nation_n and_o city_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o war_n and_o other_o commotion_n for_o more_o than_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n since_o the_o first_o dispersion_n of_o the_o church_n some_o irregularity_n and_o uncanonical_a proceed_n in_o time_n of_o great_a schism_n 3._o observe_v 3._o or_o public_a disturbance_n have_v general_o have_v a_o very_a favourable_a confirmation_n to_o make_v up_o those_o breach_n not_o otherwise_o easy_o to_o be_v heal_v and_o so_o be_v interpret_v for_o no_o interruption_n of_o this_o authentical_a succession_n such_o as_o the_o allowance_n of_o several_a schismatical_a ordination_n if_o not_o by_o downright_a heretic_n and_o other_o violent_a and_o tumultuary_a proceed_n which_o will_v not_o beforehand_o have_v pass_v without_o a_o very_a severe_a censure_n but_o afterward_o have_v be_v rather_o judge_v charitable_o to_o be_v connive_v at_o then_o with_o extreme_a force_n and_o danger_n to_o be_v whole_o alter_v without_o a_o very_a candid_a interpretation_n of_o many_o public_a occurrence_n through_o a_o long_a series_n of_o time_n all_o government_n will_v be_v expose_v to_o endless_a confusion_n the_o great_a reason_n interest_n and_o duty_n oblige_v all_o private_a person_n not_o to_o busy_v themselves_o in_o pry_v into_o much_o more_o not_o invidious_o to_o expose_v every_o punctilio_n or_o fancy_a defect_n in_o the_o least_o formality_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o those_o orderly_o set_v over_o they_o where_o no_o direct_a encouragement_n be_v give_v to_o the_o most_o presumptuous_a and_o sacrilegious_a invasion_n neither_o can_v we_o think_v our_o most_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a redeemer_n deemer_n will_v severu_o exact_v from_o his_o humble_a and_o obedient_a follower_n the_o failure_n of_o their_o guide_n which_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o amend_v or_o deny_v they_o the_o salutary_a benefit_n or_o his_o own_o institution_n for_o want_v of_o the_o most_o exact_a regularity_n of_o those_o who_o dispense_v they_o in_o which_o case_n i_o doubt_v the_o romanist_n will_v have_v as_o little_a security_n as_o any_o beside_o 2._o inquiry_n 2._o and_o that_o bring_v i_o to_o the_o second_o inquiry_n how_o far_o this_o succession_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o usual_a succession_n of_o person_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o very_a apostle_n we_o be_v not_o concern_v to_o call_v into_o question_n though_o little_o we_o have_v leave_v upon_o record_n of_o many_o among_o they_o but_o only_o their_o bare_a name_n and_o that_o signify_v not_o much_o and_o for_o the_o small_a knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n at_o the_o beginning_n or_o of_o what_o pass_v among_o they_o for_o some_o hundred_o year_n after_o st._n clemens_n we_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o writer_n of_o other_o church_n this_o so_o famous_a church_n have_v leave_v none_o for_o some_o considerable_a time_n that_o i_o know_v of_o except_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n as_o term_v be_v call_v in_o which_o the_o most_o ingenuous_a among_o they_o will_v scarce_o own_v for_o any_o other_o than_o spurious_a or_o doubtful_a at_o best_a and_o yet_o what_o great_a stress_n have_v be_v lay_v on_o they_o and_o except_v also_o the_o very_a little_a remain_n in_o other_o author_n if_o they_o or_o other_o for_o they_o have_v be_v more_o accurate_a in_o preserve_v the_o memorial_n of_o the_o lineal_a descent_n of_o their_o bishop_n than_o most_o church_n though_o learned_a man_n be_v not_o yet_o agree_v neither_o among_o themselves_o or_o we_o about_o the_o exact_a order_n of_o the_o very_a first_o of_o they_o yet_o i_o suppose_v the_o other_o patriarchal_a seat_n of_o constantinople_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n to_o mention_v no_o more_o will_v think_v themselves_o as_o secure_v of_o their_o own_o pedigree_n and_o the_o derivation_n liable_a to_o as_o few_o exception_n for_o if_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n break_v the_o connection_n of_o this_o chain_n which_o bellarmin_n here_o object_n against_o the_o greek_n it_o will_v be_v as_o hard_o for_o he_o to_o clear_v the_o like_a more_o notorious_a objection_n against_o liberius_n vigilius_n and_o honorius_n to_o mention_v nothing_o of_o late_a pope_n who_o very_a gross_a error_n if_o not_o blasphemy_n if_o they_o must_v not_o come_v under_o that_o name_n yet_o certain_o some_o of_o they_o deserve_v every_o whit_n as_o bad_a be_v as_o destructive_a to_o all_o religion_n wherein_o may_v be_v consult_v their_o own_o writer_n of_o their_o life_n i_o take_v no_o delight_n to_o search_v after_o such_o matter_n not_o to_o insist_v on_o the_o foul_a depravation_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a practice_n we_o charge_v upon_o they_o for_o so_o long_a time_n i_o hope_v not_o without_o great_a necessity_n and_o reason_n if_o schismatical_a intrusion_n present_o dissolve_v this_o orderly_a succession_n which_o the_o same_o author_n charge_v so_o confident_o here_o upon_o other_o 10._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n l._n 4._o c._n 9_o 10._o he_o himself_o will_v own_o felix_n the_o second_o and_o vigilius_n to_o have_v come_v in_o so_o and_o that_o to_o save_v any_o of_o they_o if_o possible_a from_o the_o former_a imputation_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o to_o fill_v up_o the_o number_n of_o lawful_a pope_n yea_o of_o martyr_n or_o confessor_n too_o to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o several_a schism_n and_o tumult_n from_o opposite_a election_n and_o sometime_o admission_n as_o those_o at_o the_o choice_n of_o damasus_n other_o see_v platina_n of_o they_o and_o other_o symmachus_n the_o first_o boniface_n the_o second_o sergius_n the_o first_o john_n the_o thirteen_o benedict_n the_o five_o leo_n the_o eight_o gregory_n the_o five_o benedict_n the_o nine_o silvester_n the_o three_o benedict_n the_o ten_o nicholas_n the_o second_o calistus_n the_o second_o honorius_n the_o second_o innocent_a the_o second_o vrban_n the_o six_o and_o that_o great_a schism_n when_o three_o anti-popes_n gregory_n the_o twelve_o benedict_n the_o thirteen_o and_o john_n the_o twenty_o three_o or_o as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o the_o twenty_o four_o after_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n the_o five_o claim_v the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n at_o the_o same_o time_n each_o have_v his_o follower_n to_o end_v which_o contention_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n think_v fit_a to_o depose_v they_o all_o and_o set_v up_o martin_n the_o five_o i_o mention_v nothing_o of_o that_o story_n which_o be_v sure_a be_v no_o tale_n of_o the_o protestant_n but_o some_o have_v observe_v it_o be_v first_o call_v in_o question_n by_o they_o neither_o do_v i_o insist_v on_o the_o pope_n seventy_o year_n residence_n at_o avignion_n in_o france_n these_o and_o such_o like_a accident_n what_o ever_o difficulty_n to_o know_v who_o have_v the_o best_a title_n they_o may_v afford_v not_o easy_a to_o be_v clear_v from_o he_o that_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o seek_v objection_n yet_o seem_v for_o the_o main_a no_o more_o than_o what_o the_o intricacy_n and_o perplexity_n of_o the_o current_n of_o human_a affair_n have_v be_v ever_o expose_v to_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o have_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o truth_n or_o certainty_n and_o the_o perpetual_a duration_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v think_v only_o with_o safety_n to_o be_v place_v upon_o the_o suppose_a rock_n of_o the_o stability_n of_o this_o chair_n and_o indefectibility_n of_o this_o church_n and_o with_o many_o the_o infallibility_n of_o he_o that_o preside_v therein_o and_o be_v they_o not_o so_o bold_a to_o say_v no_o more_o as_o to_o prescribe_v very_o strange_a and_o extraordinary_a rule_n or_o measure_n to_o the_o supreme_a providence_n in_o the_o conduct_n thereof_o whatever_o become_v of_o any_o other_o or_o else_o all_o must_v be_v lose_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o church_n as_o much_o from_o the_o corruption_n of_o its_o own_o member_n as_o from_o the_o violence_n and_o policy_n of_o its_o profess_a enemy_n but_o we_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o presumptuous_a as_o to_o challenge_v our_o saviour_n with_o be_v want_v to_o his_o promise_n or_o complain_v we_o want_v any_o needful_a security_n to_o our_o faith_n or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o defect_n in_o the_o authority_n or_o ministration_n of_o our_o spiritual_a guide_n if_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o set_v number_n of_o they_o may_v possible_o be_v liable_a to_o mistake_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o determine_v otherwise_o than_o they_o ought_v or_o prove_v false_a to_o their_o trust_n it_o be_v a_o very_a unsafe_a and_o
modern_a controvertist_n make_v short_a work_n in_o appeal_n to_o this_o last_o only_o effectual_a way_n of_o decision_n have_v it_o then_o be_v receive_v and_o know_v for_o so_o fundamental_a a_o principle_n of_o christianity_n as_o be_v now_o pretend_a 2._o as_o this_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n where_o yield_v be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o warrantable_a ground_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o superiority_n over_o another_o church_n which_o have_v not_o so_o clear_a evidence_n thereof_o and_o if_o these_o two_o fail_v those_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o they_o will_v gain_v very_o little_a by_o this_o note_n for_o as_o the_o succession_n may_v yea_o ought_v to_o be_v suppose_v good_a when_o sufficient_a proof_n appear_v not_o to_o the_o contrary_a so_o where_o there_o real_o appear_v want_n of_o this_o succession_n and_o need_v to_o to_o fly_v to_o other_o church_n for_o the_o relief_n thereof_o yet_o this_o charitable_a assistance_n which_o all_o aught_o most_o free_o and_o willing_o to_o offer_v or_o lend_v to_o each_o other_o do_v not_o present_o give_v one_o the_o power_n over_o the_o other_o for_o ever_o after_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o seem_v not_o to_o derive_v their_o power_n over_o the_o church_n by_o they_o plant_v so_o much_o from_o the_o success_n of_o their_o labour_n as_o from_o their_o immediate_a divine_a commission_n intimate_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o epistle_n though_o the_o one_o be_v a_o great_a endearment_n and_o enforcement_n to_o the_o other_o and_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v we_o may_v suppose_v sometime_o great_a church_n convert_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o less_o who_o be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o receive_v the_o faith_n before_o they_o young_a church_n have_v many_o time_n leap_v over_o the_o head_n of_o much_o elder_n and_o the_o inferior_a have_v gain_v some_o considerable_a advancement_n in_o a_o civil_a account_n have_v soon_o arrive_v at_o a_o proportionable_a promotion_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o particular_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o somewhat_o like_a may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o change_n of_o other_o city_n superior_a bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o those_o over_o who_o they_o after_o have_v some_o authority_n for_o if_o not_o only_a priority_n of_o order_n but_o also_o superiority_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v unalterable_o entail_v upon_o the_o elder_a i_o doubt_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v certain_o the_o mother-church_n must_v be_v also_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o and_o if_o that_o line_n be_v extinct_a i_o believe_v there_o be_v many_o other_o branch_n it_o must_v descend_v to_o before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o roman_a some_o have_v dispute_v whether_o britain_n itself_o have_v not_o a_o church_n as_o soon_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v ground_v a_o claim_n from_o what_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o other_o sufficient_a for_o the_o same_o purpose_n seem_v very_o unequal_a but_o sure_o the_o design_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o spiritual_a warfare_n be_v not_o like_o those_o usual_o of_o the_o carnal_a mere_o to_o enlarge_v the_o dominion_n of_o their_o leader_n and_o advance_v the_o power_n of_o their_o governor_n the_o church_n conquest_n consist_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o soul_n gain_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a plantation_n or_o far_a growth_n and_o emprovement_n of_o all_o christian_a grace_n and_o virtue_n in_o man_n wind_n in_o fasten_v some_o good_a and_o benefit_n on_o they_o and_o not_o in_o gain_v new_a outward_a dependence_n to_o ourselves_o any_o far_a than_o the_o needful_a preservation_n of_o peace_n and_o order_n in_o every_o distinct_a dominion_n what_o be_v more_o smell_v too_o strong_a of_o worldly_a policy_n temporal_a gain_n or_o secular_a ambition_n to_o have_v any_o true_a place_n here_o when_o man_n be_v more_o industrious_a to_o promote_v and_o encourage_v every_o where_o sincere_a piety_n and_o probity_n and_o less_o concern_v in_o the_o claim_v of_o unlimited_a sovereignty_n and_o power_n then_o may_v we_o think_v true_a religion_n and_o not_o other_o interest_n to_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n with_o they_o but_o to_o consider_v a_o little_a the_o cardinal_n testimony_n here_o the_o second_o out_o of_o st._n augustin_n psalmo_fw-la contra_fw-la partem_fw-la donati_n be_v the_o full_a and_o alone_a pertinent_a to_o their_o purpose_n i_o single_v out_o numerate_v inquit_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la vel_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sede_n petri_n &_o in_o ordine_fw-la illa_fw-la patrum_fw-la quis_fw-la cvi_fw-la successerit_fw-la videte_fw-la ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la petriae_fw-la quam_fw-la non_fw-la vincunt_fw-la superbae_fw-la inferorum_fw-la portae_n as_o to_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o it_o where_o the_o stress_n lie_v we_o have_v this_o argument_n that_o it_o must_v be_v interpret_v only_o as_o a_o occasional_a allusion_n that_o in_o many_o place_n where_o he_o purposely_o expound_v that_o passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o make_v christ_n himself_o confess_v by_o st._n peter_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o he_o build_v his_o church_n as_o retract_v l._n 1.21_o tom._n 1._o p._n 30._o and_o in_o cap._n 21._o sti._n johan_n tom._n 9_o p._n 572._o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la quam_fw-la confessus_fw-la se_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o assert_v no_o more_o but_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o a_o single_a case_n that_o the_o seat_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o which_o the_o donatist_n when_o condemn_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n upon_o their_o appeal_n to_o the_o emperor_n be_v refer_v be_v as_o a_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n so_o he_o resemble_v their_o presumption_n do_v not_o prevail_v against_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n be_v give_v against_o they_o by_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o other_o join_v with_o he_o where_o though_o some_o allusion_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o gospel_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o fair_a to_o strain_v a_o argument_n thence_o against_o the_o plain_a and_o express_o design_v exposition_n of_o if_o especial_o among_o such_o short_a stricture_n of_o which_o that_o tract_n be_v make_v up_o and_o for_o the_o other_o testimony_n in_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o epiphanius_n we_o acknowledge_v their_o argument_n good_a against_o upstart_n teacher_n of_o new_a doctrine_n but_o they_o express_o join_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n with_o that_o of_o person_n otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v of_o no_o validity_n unless_o by_o refer_v their_o adversary_n who_o be_v not_o much_o move_v by_o authority_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o opposite_a opinion_n to_o they_o from_o the_o first_o original_n the_o other_o two_o place_n in_o st._n aug._n and_o that_o of_o optatus_n against_o the_o donatist_n imply_v no_o more_o to_o those_o presumptuous_a incloser_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n within_o their_o own_o narrow_a bound_n and_o beginner_n of_o it_o from_o themselves_o than_o a_o challenge_n for_o they_o to_o show_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o apostolical_a original_a thereof_o or_o after-conveyance_n like_o other_o church_n and_o particular_o the_o roman_a wherein_n st._n augustin_n epist_n 165_o after_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o thus_o close_v in_o hoc_fw-la ordine_fw-la successionis_fw-la nullus_fw-la donatista_n episcopus_fw-la invenitur_fw-la and_o in_o all_o his_o dispute_n with_o they_o lay_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o gild_n of_o their_o schism_n upon_o the_o separation_n from_o all_o the_o church_n disperse_v over_o the_o world_n according_a to_o prophetical_a and_o evangelical_n declaration_n no_o person_n or_o place_n to_o prejudicate_v to_o all_o other_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o forementioned_a ut_fw-la certa_fw-la sit_fw-la spes_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la in_o homine_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o domino_fw-la collocata_fw-la all_o which_o and_o more_o to_o any_o that_o consult_v the_o reference_n throughout_o rather_o confirm_v our_o claim_n we_o have_v as_o good_a evidence_n and_o conveyance_n as_o our_o adversary_n can_v challenge_v we_o pretend_v not_o to_o any_o new_a doctrine_n but_o for_o the_o main_a we_o be_v what_o themselves_o dare_v not_o but_o own_o what_o we_o reject_v among_o they_o be_v not_o only_o as_o addition_n which_o none_o must_v make_v to_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o religion_n but_o over_o and_o above_o very_o dangerous_a and_o destructive_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o both_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o such_o doctrine_n or_o continuance_n of_o it_o we_o need_v no_o new_a miracle_n or_o new_a authority_n from_o heaven_n but_o a_o orderly_a conveyance_n of_o the_o old_a and_o that_o we_o still_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n retain_v and_o true_o bellarmin_n inference_n from_o the_o mention_a citation_n will_v carry_v in_o it_o little_a or_o no_o force_n but_o seem_v rather_o to_o incline_v the_o contrary_a way_n if_o they_o say_v he_o make_v so_o much_o of_o the_o continue_a succession_n of_o 12_o 20_o or_o 40_o bishop_n how_o much_o may_v
next_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o that_o be_v new_a rome_n 3._o rome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d council_n constantinop_n can._n 3._o so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o imperial_a city_n of_o rome_n which_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o a_o divine_a institution_n or_o a_o succession_n from_o st._n peter_n and_o when_o constantinople_n by_o the_o emperor_n remove_v thither_o become_v the_o next_o great_a city_n the_o bishop_n partake_v of_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o city_n and_o in_o the_o four_o general_n council_n at_o chalcedon_n have_v for_o that_o reason_n equal_a privilege_n confer_v upon_o he_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o old_a rome_n 28._o rome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d council_n calce_v can._n 28._o as_o the_o father_n express_o declare_v to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v the_o famous_a case_n of_o appeal_n which_o be_v challenge_v about_o the_o year_n 418_o by_o pope_n zosimus_n over_o the_o african_a church_n not_o by_o divine_a right_n but_o by_o a_o pretend_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n which_o be_v find_v afterward_o to_o be_v forge_v and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o receive_v appeal_n or_o to_o judge_n the_o cause_n of_o other_o church_n be_v full_o disow_v and_o disclaim_v 6._o disclaim_v council_n carthag_n 6._o and_o this_o with_o the_o exemption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n ravenna_n and_o aquileia_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o be_v so_o near_a neighbour_n to_o it_o even_o in_o italy_n itself_o be_v enough_o to_o give_v full_a satisfaction_n to_o any_o reasonable_a man_n what_o a_o different_a opinion_n the_o primitive_a church_n have_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o what_o it_o now_o have_v of_o itself_o concern_v a_o universal_a supremacy_n and_o of_o its_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n the_o next_o most_o peculiar_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n be_v transubsiantiation_n which_o as_o it_o be_v former_o own_v by_o valentia_n 7._o valentia_n de_fw-fr transub_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 7._o and_o cusanus_fw-la 40._o cusanus_fw-la exercit._fw-la l._n 6._o ser._n 40._o and_o a_o great_a many_o of_o the_o schoolman_n scotus_n durandus_fw-la and_o other_o major_n other_o vid._n pref._n ad_fw-la johan_n major_n not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o it_o have_v be_v late_o prove_v at_o large_a by_o one_o of_o their_o own_o communion_n transubstantiation_n communion_n a_o treatise_n write_v by_o a_o author_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v transubstantiation_n though_o if_o for_o that_o reason_n it_o may_v be_v throw_v out_o from_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o will_v leave_v but_o very_o few_o proper_a to_o themselves_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o gentleman_n to_o wit_n the_o make_v not_o the_o present_a but_o the_o primitive_a church_n a_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o if_o they_o will_v universal_o follow_v it_o will_v lead_v they_o quite_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o well_o as_o out_o of_o that_o single_a error_n of_o it_o we_o have_v such_o excellent_a treatise_n of_o late_a par_fw-fr late_a see_v discourse_n of_o transubstantiation_n transubstantiation_n no_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o transubstantiation_n compare_v 1._o par_fw-fr about_o this_o which_o prove_v it_o beyond_o all_o exception_n and_o beyond_o all_o answer_n to_o be_v no_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o i_o shall_v add_v nothing_o about_o it_o but_o only_o these_o two_o observation_n first_o that_o it_o appear_v not_o by_o any_o liturgy_n or_o eucharistick_a form_n that_o be_v ever_o use_v by_o the_o church_n no_o not_o by_o the_o roman_a canon_n itself_o which_o be_v much_o ancient_a than_o this_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o not_o so_o conform_v to_o it_o that_o the_o church_n ever_o use_v any_o prayer_n to_o this_o purpose_n at_o the_o eucharist_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n shall_v be_v change_v or_o do_v away_o and_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n substitute_v instead_o of_o they_o under_o the_o species_n or_o accident_n but_o only_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n come_v down_o upon_o they_o so_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o spiritual_a and_o sacramental_a not_o a_o substantial_a change_n of_o they_o that_o be_v ever_o pray_v for_o or_o ever_o believe_v for_o if_o the_o church_n have_v always_o have_v this_o faith_n it_o will_v sure_o have_v sometime_o pray_v in_o it_o second_o i_o observe_v that_o in_o those_o time_n when_o this_o doctrine_n come_v first_o into_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o little_a before_o berengarius_fw-la it_o be_v so_o new_a and_o raw_a that_o it_o be_v not_o full_o digest_v nor_o perfect_o understand_v even_o by_o those_o who_o then_o hold_v it_o as_o appear_v by_o that_o blunder_a recantation_n which_o be_v draw_v up_o for_o he_o after_o the_o examination_n of_o no_o less_o than_o three_o pope_n and_o five_o synod_n wherein_o he_o be_v make_v to_o say_v that_o after_o consecration_n the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o sacramental_o but_o sensible_o and_o true_o handle_v and_o break_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o ground_n by_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a cap._n faithful_a post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la sensualitèr_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la sacramento_n sed_fw-la veritate_fw-la manibus_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la tractari_fw-la frangi_fw-la &_o fidelium_fw-la dentibus_fw-la atteri_fw-la grat._n de_fw-fr consec_n do_v 2._o cap._n this_o sensible_a and_o true_a handle_n and_o break_v and_o grind_v christ_n body_n be_v so_o strange_a and_o dreadful_a a_o thing_n that_o the_o glossator_fw-la observe_v this_o upon_o it_o that_o unless_o you_o do_v understand_v these_o word_n of_o berengarius_fw-la in_o a_o sound_a sense_n ib._n sense_n nisi_fw-la sanè_fw-la intelligas_fw-la verba_fw-la berengarii_fw-la in_o majorem_fw-la incidas_fw-la haeresin_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la babuit_fw-la glos_n ib._n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o word_n signify_v and_o mean_v you_o will_v fall_v into_o a_o great_a heresy_n than_o that_o of_o berengarius_fw-la himself_z by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o monster_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o a_o great_a man_n point_n man_n perrone_n see_v the_o excellent_a preface_n to_o a_o discourse_n on_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o two_o great_a point_n of_o their_o own_o afterward_o call_v it_o be_v so_o unformed_a and_o mishapen_a a_o thing_n at_o that_o time_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n it_o be_v then_o but_o new_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o have_v need_n of_o be_v far_o lick_v into_o a_o better_a shape_n if_o transubstantiation_n be_v then_o but_o new_a those_o other_o doctrine_n which_o have_v issue_v from_o it_o and_o be_v its_o proper_a production_n can_v not_o be_v old_a such_o as_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n solitary_a mass_n and_o the_o proper_a and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o since_o their_o date_n will_v be_v own_v to_o be_v as_o late_o as_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o though_o they_o may_v not_o follow_v from_o it_o yet_o they_o can_v be_v maintain_v or_o believe_v without_o it_o so_o that_o what_o have_v be_v say_v against_o the_o one_o take_v away_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o other_o as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n though_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v declare_v this_o to_o be_v exact_o seven_o and_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v so_o yet_o no_o man_n sure_o will_v have_v the_o confidence_n to_o say_v that_o this_o number_n be_v determine_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o they_o can_v bring_v no_o author_n who_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o such_o a_o number_n till_o 1100_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o bellarmin_n think_v it_o unreasonable_a we_o shall_v require_v they_o to_o show_v this_o either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o father_n 24._o father_n non_fw-la debere_fw-la adversarios_fw-la petere_fw-la ut_fw-la ostendamus_fw-la in_o scripture_n au●_n patribus_fw-la nomen_fw-la septenacii_n numeri_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr effect_n sacram._n l._n 2._o c._n 24._o though_o if_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o must_v be_v believe_v upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v something_o to_o show_v for_o it_o one_o will_v think_v out_o of_o one_o of_o they_o be_v the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o in_o the_o time_n of_o peter_n lombard_n he_o tell_v we_o 17._o we_o in_o his_o enim_fw-la etiam_fw-la docti_fw-la
and_o receive_v as_o such_o when_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v so_o before_o and_o how_o then_o do_v that_o differ_v from_o make_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n speak_v plain_o out_o though_o against_o his_o own_o note_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o latter_a time_n have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o explain_v and_o declare_v but_o constitute_v and_o command_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n pontif._n faith_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum._n pontif._n if_o the_o present_a church_n have_v a_o power_n to_o make_v more_o doctrine_n and_o article_n be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n than_o it_o may_v make_v addition_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o make_v that_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v at_o one_o time_n which_o be_v not_o at_o another_o if_o it_o have_v not_o this_o power_n let_v they_o declare_v it_o and_o not_o count_v other_o heretic_n who_o receive_v all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a council_n and_o believe_v all_o those_o doctrine_n that_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n in_o all_o place_n and_o at_o all_o time_n ever_o hold_v here_o with_o lyrinensis_n we_o fix_v and_o set_v our_o foot_n and_o here_o we_o resolve_v to_o stand_v and_o keep_v our_o ground_n and_o not_o be_v move_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n that_o shall_v blow_v out_o of_o a_o new_a quarter_n and_o that_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n shall_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n when_o it_o be_v never_o so_o declare_v by_o the_o primitive_a to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v make_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o church_n but_o only_o the_o same_o article_n make_v explicit_fw-la which_o be_v implicit_a before_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v no_o new_a man_n in_o the_o world_n since_o adam_n or_o noah_n but_o only_o the_o same_o man_n that_o be_v before_o implicit_a in_o their_o loin_n be_v now_o explicit_o bear_v into_o the_o world._n thus_o the_o church_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o fruitful_a in_o produce_v doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o never_o be_v before_o in_o the_o church_n yet_o make_v nothing_o new_a and_o however_o spurious_a its_o doctrine_n may_v be_v and_o however_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o forefather_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o species_n i'faith_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v but_o a_o embryo_n or_o like_o a_o small_a seed_n or_o kernel_n implicit_o contain_v all_o the_o part_n entire_a but_o in_o little_a but_o when_o it_o be_v grow_v up_o and_o enlarge_v by_o the_o explicit_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n than_o it_o may_v swell_v into_o a_o mighty_a bigness_n and_o increase_v even_o into_o the_o large_a tridentine_a bulk_n and_o be_v it_o never_o so_o unlike_o the_o former_a yet_o it_o must_v be_v call_v the_o same_o still_o but_o if_o this_o implicit_a faith_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o primitive_a church_n why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v so_o for_o the_o present_a and_o what_o need_n have_v we_o of_o a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n to_o save_v we_o now_o than_o they_o have_v to_o save_v they_o then_o all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v at_o all_o time_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o we_o must_v be_v now_o oblige_v to_o a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n and_o a_o more_o implicit_a obedience_n than_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v ever_o acquaint_v with_o but_o after_o all_o i_o hope_v those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o then_o implicit_o believe_v by_o it_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o i_o be_o sure_a most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o different_a from_o the_o reform_a be_v not_o her_o implicit_a doctrine_n but_o unless_o error_n may_v be_v fold_v up_o with_o truth_n and_o one_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n may_v be_v involve_v in_o the_o other_o the_o late_a corruption_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o her_o trent_n article_n be_v no_o way_n contain_v in_o the_o quite_o different_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o thus_o because_o i_o have_v go_v too_o far_o with_o this_o discourse_n i_o must_v abrupt_o take_v leave_n of_o bellarmin_n and_o his_o church_n though_o i_o resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o keep_v always_o to_o this_o his_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o to_o that_o church_n in_o which_o i_o be_o which_o be_v the_o most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o primitive_a of_o any_o in_o the_o world_n both_o as_o to_o doctrine_n and_o every_o thing_n else_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o seven_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n septima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la vnio_n membrorum_fw-la 〈…〉_o inter_fw-la se_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la capite_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n 10._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la may_v 26._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n the_o church_n as_o the_o cardinal_n observe_v be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n one_o body_n one_o spouse_n one_o sheepfold_a but_o he_o that_o infer_v from_o hence_o that_o unity_n be_v a_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n aught_o to_o be_v very_o well_o assure_v that_o the_o head_n and_o member_n be_v unite_v nowhere_o but_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o harlot_n can_v be_v one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o spouse_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o world_n have_v hitherto_o be_v persuade_v that_o bare_a unity_n be_v a_o character_n to_o be_v find_v upon_o society_n of_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a design_n that_o of_o itself_o it_o infer_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a and_o may_v belong_v to_o a_o body_n of_o rebel_n no_o less_o than_o to_o a_o army_n of_o loyal_a subject_n unity_n be_v then_o indeed_o a_o good_a mark_n when_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n when_o the_o term_n of_o union_n be_v so_o for_o which_o reason_n the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o excellent_a because_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o follow_v that_o truth_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o these_o be_v best_a preserve_v and_o maintain_v by_o union_n among_o those_o who_o follow_v they_o for_o which_o reason_n also_o it_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o gospel_n with_o variety_n of_o expression_n but_o to_o argue_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o union_n of_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o head_n be_v a_o proper_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v just_a as_o if_o i_o shall_v conclude_v upon_o see_v a_o thousand_o man_n march_v in_o good_a order_n and_o with_o equal_a pace_n after_o their_o leader_n that_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v be_v go_v to_o york_n notwithstanding_o therefore_o this_o argument_n from_o unity_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o leave_v his_o mark_n so_o very_o loose_a and_o common_a but_o slip_v into_o the_o mention_n of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v as_o he_o pretend_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o head_n with_o which_o the_o member_n be_v unite_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o as_o for_o their_o union_n among_o themselves_o he_o afterward_o prove_v that_o all_o catholic_n must_v needs_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n since_o they_o all_o submit_v their_o own_o sense_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o chief_a pastor_n guide_v the_o church_n from_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o other_o pastor_n so_o that_o now_o we_o know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o their_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o their_o head_n and_o their_o union_n among_o themselves_o in_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o teach_v from_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n etc._n etc._n which_o note_n do_v for_o its_o part_n make_v good_a what_o be_v observe_v at_o first_o concern_v the_o general_a design_n of_o these_o note_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o describe_v to_o we_o the_o proper_a character_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n as_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n whatever_o the_o cardinal_n insinuate_v at_o first_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o sensible_a that_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n
with_o the_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o be_v too_o large_a a_o note_n to_o fit_v no_o other_o society_n but_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n now_o if_o in_o restrain_v his_o note_n he_o have_v understand_v christ_n by_o the_o head_n and_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o one_o another_o a_o agreement_n in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n this_o indeed_o will_v have_v serve_v for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o then_o this_o be_v too_o large_a for_o the_o cardinal_n purpose_n which_o be_v to_o find_v no_o other_o church_n to_o be_v true_a but_o the_o roman_a and_o therefore_o by_o the_o head_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n a_o agreement_n in_o all_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o this_o will_v mark_v all_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o but_o it_o will_v most_o undoubted_o mark_v all_o other_o christian_n out_o of_o the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o admirable_a reason_n to_o which_o it_o lead_v that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o its_o head_n and_o for_o its_o faith_n profess_v the_o doctrine_n whatever_o it_o be_v that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n quod_fw-la erat_fw-la demonstrandum_fw-la and_o if_o the_o cardinal_n have_v leave_v the_o matter_n thus_o in_o shorf_n he_o have_v in_o my_o mind_n do_v better_o for_o his_o church_n and_o his_o reason_n have_v be_v less_o exceptionable_a than_o he_o have_v make_v it_o in_o the_o pursuance_n of_o his_o enlargement_n when_o a_o man_n have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o untractable_a piece_n of_o matter_n it_o often_o happen_v that_o the_o more_o he_o strive_v to_o fashion_v it_o to_o his_o own_o purpose_n the_o far_o he_o be_v from_o it_o and_o so_o this_o great_a man_n by_o labour_v overmuch_o to_o make_v this_o his_o mark_n of_o unity_n utter_o unserviceable_a to_o any_o other_o church_n have_v give_v it_o that_o figure_n at_o last_o which_o make_v it_o unfit_a for_o his_o own_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o convenient_a place_n for_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v out_o these_o three_o thing_n i._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o that_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o i._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o shall_v show_v concern_v both_o his_o instance_n of_o it_o and_o first_o concern_v union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o pretence_n that_o have_v neither_o scripture_n reason_n nor_o antiquity_n for_o it_o but_o all_o against_o it_o 1._o for_o scripture_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v not_o any_o proof_n from_o thence_o of_o his_o presumption_n which_o yet_o have_v be_v very_o requisite_a to_o a_o point_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o consequence_n if_o the_o scripture_n have_v afford_v any_o testimony_n to_o his_o purpose_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o centre_n of_o its_o unity_n that_o union_n to_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o essential_a character_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o depend_v upon_o he_o but_o that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v not_o give_v we_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o perfect_o unaccountable_a that_o the_o very_a silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o high_a nature_n be_v to_o we_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n that_o the_o apostle_n know_v nothing_o of_o any_o such_o constitution_n especial_o since_o they_o do_v not_o forget_v to_o make_v plain_a and_o frequent_a mention_n of_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o all_o the_o member_n be_v to_o be_v unite_v viz._n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o tell_v we_o 23._o eph._n i_o 20_o 22_o 23._o that_o when_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n that_o as_o there_o be_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n so_o we_o be_v many_o 5._o rom._n twelve_o 4_o 5._o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n that_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n 27._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 12_o 27._o i.e._n christ_n and_o the_o church_n the_o whole_a be_v denominate_v from_o the_o head_n for_o we_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n 16._o eph._n four_o 16._o even_o christ_n 23._o verse_n 23._o from_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v fit_o join_v together_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 18._o col._n i._n 18._o and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n may_v be_v add_v now_o when_o the_o church_n be_v so_o frequent_o declare_v to_o be_v one_o body_n and_o to_o this_o one_o body_n one_o head_n be_v so_o frequent_o assign_v and_o no_o more_o what_o can_v any_o man_n who_o be_v not_o possess_v with_o prejudice_n make_v of_o this_o but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o head_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o he_o who_o be_v so_o often_o mention_v as_o such_o and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o any_o man_n go_v about_o to_o add_v another_o head_n to_o the_o church_n he_o may_v if_o he_o please_v find_v out_o another_o church_n for_o the_o head_n nor_o do_v it_o help_v at_o all_o that_o they_o pretend_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v but_o the_o vicarious_a and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n since_o if_o without_o union_n to_o he_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o pretend_v vicarious_a head_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o plain_o and_o frequent_o express_v as_o we_o know_v the_o true_a and_o real_a head_n to_o have_v be_v nay_o it_o be_v something_o more_o necessary_a since_o a_o very_a slender_a intimation_n may_v have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n 18._o col._n i._n 15_o 18._o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v and_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n consist_v be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 14._o ver._n 14._o that_o he_o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n who_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n and_o for_o our_o sake_n humble_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n and_o be_v exalt_v to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n unto_o his_o church_n he_o i_o say_v in_o who_o infinite_a power_n and_o goodness_n meet_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v another_o head_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o which_o be_v no_o less_o necessary_a than_o union_n to_o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o this_o catholic_n head_n shall_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o sinful_a man_n and_o he_o very_o often_o none_o of_o the_o best_a this_o be_v so_o far_o remove_v from_o self-evidence_n or_o even_a probability_n that_o it_o certain_o need_v very_o express_a mention_n if_o not_o frequent_a inculcation_n now_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v frequent_o mention_v as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o in_o comparison_n need_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v at_o all_o and_o that_o no_o mention_n at_o all_o shall_v be_v make_v of_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o need_v it_o very_o much_o be_v for_o they_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o who_o make_v union_n to_o this_o late_a head_n no_o less_o necessary_a to_o a_o part_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o union_n to_o the_o former_a which_o account_n will_v be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v give_v inasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o this_o pretend_a head_n where_o there_o be_v the_o most_o fair_a and_o invite_a occasion_n for_o it_o that_o can_v be_v well_o imagine_v thus_o st._n paul_n show_v what_o gift_n christ_n bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n after_o his_o ascension_n say_v he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n etc._n eph._n four_o 11_o 12_o etc._n etc._n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o
in_o omnibus_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la conveniunt_fw-la all_o doctrine_n just_o so_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n decree_a that_o all_o power_n even_o the_o papal_a be_v in_o thing_n appertain_v to_o religion_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o council_n agree_v with_o the_o abolition_n of_o the_o pragmatic_n sanction_n by_o the_o lateran_n council_n under_o leo_n x_o by_o which_o the_o council_n be_v make_v to_o truckle_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o which_o and_o other_o instance_n of_o the_o like_a sort_n no_o help_n be_v to_o be_v have_v from_o that_o qualification_n of_o lawful_a council_n since_o what_o the_o jesuit_n will_v not_o own_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a council_n be_v by_o other_o party_n in_o that_o church_n own_v to_o be_v so_o and_o that_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v at_o wonderful_a unity_n within_o itself_o that_o can_v so_o much_o as_o agree_v what_o council_n be_v lawful_a and_o what_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v so_o agree_v their_o church-unity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v brag_v of_o when_o there_o be_v enough_o among_o they_o to_o make_v a_o unlawful_a council_n and_o to_o determine_v otherwise_o in_o a_o point_n of_o so_o vast_a consequence_n as_o that_o abovementioned_a than_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v for_o if_o in_o the_o same_o communion_n one_o council_n determine_v one_o way_n and_o another_o the_o contrary_a way_n that_o communion_n can_v be_v say_v to_o agree_v ever_o the_o more_o for_o one_o be_v a_o lawful_a and_o the_o other_o a_o unlawful_a council_n whereas_o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n be_v also_o at_o unity_n with_o one_o another_o one_o will_v expect_v that_o in_o the_o next_o place_n fire_n and_o water_n shall_v be_v bring_v in_o for_o a_o example_n of_o agreement_n too_o for_o they_o may_v be_v make_v to_o agree_v as_o soon_o as_o the_o decree_n of_o many_o pope_n leo_n and_o gelasius_n condemn_v receive_v in_o one_o kind_n 12._o de_fw-fr consecr_n dist_n 2._o cap._n 12._o have_v there_o be_v no_o pope_n since_o that_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a nicholas_n iv_o determine_a that_o christ_n be_v a_o beggar_n 4._o extravag_n joh._n tit._n 14._o cap._n 4._o and_o have_v right_o to_o nothing_o but_o john_n xxii_o come_v not_o long_o after_o he_o and_o make_v it_o heretical_a so_o to_o say_v it_o have_v be_v so_o frequent_a a_o practice_n for_o pope_n to_o overthrow_v the_o decree_n of_o their_o predecessor_n that_o it_o be_v endless_a to_o recount_v the_o particular_n as_o for_o the_o writer_n which_o they_o may_v just_o claim_v to_o themselves_o how_o bellarmin_n shall_v come_v to_o fancy_v such_o a_o wonderful_a agreement_n be_v very_o strange_a who_o in_o his_o own_o controversy_n have_v observe_v so_o many_o notable_a difference_n among_o they_o alibi_fw-la de_fw-fr council_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 14._o &_o alibi_fw-la be_v it_o not_o bellarmin_n that_o observe_v several_a catholic_n writer_n to_o have_v agree_v with_o the_o heretic_n in_o assert_v the_o council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o as_o those_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o themselves_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o other_o side_n of_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n that_o assert_v the_o contrary_a and_o this_o be_v no_o trifle_a question_n neither_o such_o disagreement_n be_v note_v by_o the_o same_o cardinal_n upon_o other_o material_a point_n viz._n concern_v the_o pope_n temporal_a power_n whether_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n be_v dispensable_a what_o worship_n may_v be_v give_v to_o image_n whether_o image_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v or_o not_o whether_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o of_o their_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n whether_o intention_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o sacrament_n whether_o a_o express_a purpose_n of_o forsake_v sin_n be_v necessary_a to_o contrition_n whether_o good_a work_n be_v true_o meritorious_a and_o concern_v many_o more_o question_n in_o most_o of_o which_o some_o or_o other_o of_o themselves_o have_v hold_v as_o protestant_n do_v against_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o church_n not_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o dispute_n between_o the_o thomist_n the_o scotist_n and_o the_o occamist_n which_o be_v not_o all_o about_o trifle_n the_o question_n between_o the_o dominican_n and_o franciscan_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n be_v by_o themselves_o esteem_v of_o such_o consequence_n that_o there_o have_v be_v revelation_n about_o it_o against_o revelation_n and_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o miracle_n against_o miracle_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v the_o flame_a contention_n between_o the_o jansenist_n and_o the_o molinist_n 10._o see_v veteres_n vindicat._n c._n 10._o both_o which_o grow_v to_o such_o a_o height_n that_o it_o have_v be_v all_o along_o almost_o as_o dangerous_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o let_v their_o controversy_n go_v on_o as_o to_o go_v about_o to_o decide_v they_o i_o confess_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o new_a methodist_n the_o french_a expositor_n and_o the_o english_a representer_n have_v as_o yet_o occasion_v but_o little_a disturbance_n in_o that_o communion_n for_o which_o i_o know_v a_o good_a reason_n but_o this_o i_o will_v say_v that_o if_o their_o new-popery_n can_v in_o all_o point_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o old_a 90._o see_v defence_n of_o exp._n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ch._n of_o england_n p._n 90._o i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o their_o unity_n may_v be_v inviolable_a now_o that_o they_o have_v get_v the_o knack_n of_o make_v contradiction_n agree_v with_o one_o another_o but_o to_o all_o such_o instance_n as_o these_o bellarmine_n have_v supply_v they_o with_o a_o ready_a answer_n that_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o faith._n upon_o which_o cautious_a answer_n one_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o inquire_v how_o near_o a_o question_n in_o religion_n must_v be_v ally_v to_o the_o faith_n before_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o it_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o tell_v we_o now_o and_o then_o of_o something_o hold_v by_o catholic_n that_o be_v fere_n haereticum_fw-la as_o he_o call_v it_o almost_o heretical_a in_o which_o case_n the_o question_n shall_v be_v also_o almost_o of_o faith_n and_o may_v be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v simple_o that_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o say_v afterward_o and_o that_o all_o catholic_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n about_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o be_v tell_v before_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v he_o but_o then_o we_o expect_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o calvinist_n shall_v be_v hear_v too_o when_o to_o the_o papist_n charge_v they_o with_o some_o difference_n they_o make_v the_o same_o answer_n that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o faith_n especial_o since_o when_o they_o come_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o they_o say_v they_o will_v show_v that_o the_o matter_n wherein_o they_o differ_v do_v not_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v something_o a_o better_a argument_n than_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o party_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n viz._n that_o they_o all_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n for_o to_o say_v no_o more_o to_o this_o at_o present_a notwithstanding_o this_o profession_n we_o be_v very_o sure_o that_o some_o of_o they_o take_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n which_o other_o do_v not_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v they_o of_o which_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n be_v notorious_a and_o undeniable_a instance_n but_o now_o if_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n shall_v be_v mean_v such_o a_o union_n as_o will_v hinder_v the_o separation_n of_o some_o from_o the_o rest_n then_o this_o note_n must_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n be_v pretend_v to_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o which_o so_o many_o church_n that_o once_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o she_o have_v break_v away_o indeed_o he_o do_v not_o express_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v this_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o but_o some_o such_o thing_n he_o must_v mean_v or_o else_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o note_n he_o do_v impertinent_o run_v down_o the_o lutheran_n as_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o have_v beget_v so_o many_o sect_n which_o as_o he_o pretend_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o heresy_n and_o then_o it_o may_v as_o true_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o who_o communion_n we_o be_v before_o the_o reformation_n want_v the_o mark_n of_o unity_n because_o so_o many_o have_v break_v away_o from_o she_o as_o that_o any_o other_o church_n want_v it_o because_o some_o
have_v also_o divide_v from_o they_o for_o it_o be_v very_o idle_a to_o say_v that_o though_o we_o be_v member_n of_o that_o church_n when_o we_o first_o begin_v to_o differ_v from_o it_o yet_o that_o by_o our_o division_n we_o cut_v ourselves_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o her_o communion_n be_v not_o affect_v by_o our_o departure_n for_o thus_o we_o may_v as_o well_o excuse_v all_o the_o separation_n from_o we_o or_o from_o any_o other_o church_n viz._n that_o by_o separate_v from_o we_o they_o no_o long_o belong_v to_o we_o we_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n of_o any_o great_a moment_n we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v agree_v much_o more_o together_o than_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o they_o who_o have_v go_v out_o from_o we_o they_o as_o little_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o rest_n who_o they_o be_v go_v from_o as_o luther_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n break_v the_o unity_n of_o those_o who_o still_o remain_v in_o it_o so_o that_o either_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v renounce_v her_o pretence_n to_o unity_n upon_o this_o account_n that_o sect_n and_o party_n have_v not_o break_v away_o from_o she_o or_o she_o must_v set_v up_o this_o wise_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o all_o her_o member_n be_v unite_v except_o those_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o she_o which_o be_v a_o mark_n that_o will_v fit_v any_o society_n in_o the_o world._n but_o the_o cardinal_n do_v here_o offer_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o division_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o church_n and_o a_o division_n from_o heresy_n that_o in_o their_o church_n they_o have_v a_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n viz._n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o therefore_o dissension_n do_v not_o arise_v among_o they_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o from_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n now_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o not_o to_o be_v importunate_a with_o that_o question_n that_o if_o these_o be_v the_o way_n of_o compound_v controversy_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o their_o controversy_n still_o remain_v i_o will_v know_v 1._o why_o be_v not_o these_o the_o mean_n of_o compose_v those_o controversy_n that_o carry_v we_o away_o from_o they_o our_o father_n be_v once_o of_o their_o communion_n and_o those_o mean_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o retain_v they_o in_o it_o to_o say_v this_o arise_v from_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o they_o which_o be_v a_o little_a too_o magisterial_a for_o a_o controvertist_n though_o he_o be_v a_o cardinal_n unless_o he_o resolve_v to_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o devil_n that_o they_o be_v take_v off_o from_o a_o implicit_a faith_n and_o a_o blind_a obedience_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o people_n opinion_n when_o man_n begin_v to_o judge_n a_o little_a for_o themselves_o the_o spirit_n of_o heresy_n come_v in_o and_o then_o away_o they_o go_v but_o from_o hence_o i_o gather_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o a_o plenary_a council_n be_v no_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n nor_o certain_a mean_n of_o prevent_a division_n if_o some_o other_o mean_n be_v not_o use_v to_o keep_v man_n from_o try_v the_o spirit_n and_o prove_v all_o thing_n what_o they_o be_v the_o cardinal_n know_v very_o well_o but_o mention_v they_o not_o nor_o shall_v i_o need_v to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n when_o whole_a country_n go_v off_o from_o that_o church_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v a_o little_a consider_v what_o they_o have_v believe_v upon_o her_o authority_n i_o need_v not_o say_v whether_o the_o separation_n be_v cause_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n or_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o leave_v the_o world_n to_o judge_n but_o 2._o how_o can_v those_o be_v certain_a mean_n of_o compose_v controversy_n concern_v which_o even_o in_o their_o own_o church_n there_o be_v the_o great_a controversy_n of_o all_o what_o deference_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o their_o chief_a pastor_n have_v always_o be_v a_o great_a dispute_n among_o they_o and_o the_o best_a if_o not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o church_n do_v not_o think_v he_o infallible_a nor_o be_v it_o yet_o agree_v what_o be_v requisite_a to_o make_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_a council_n decisive_a nor_o of_o those_o council_n that_o have_v contradict_v one_o another_o which_o they_o be_v to_o follow_v and_o that_o can_v be_v a_o certain_a rule_n for_o decide_v controversy_n which_o be_v itself_o controvert_v so_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o that_o union_n of_o member_n among_o themselves_o nor_o those_o certain_a mean_n of_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v which_o i_o shall_v far_o show_v from_o a_o learned_a writer_n of_o their_o own_o the_o famous_a 353._o famous_a ep._n par_fw-fr 8._o p._n 353._o launoy_n who_o in_o a_o elaborate_a epistle_n to_o nic._n gatinaeus_fw-la whole_o overthrow_v the_o pretence_n in_o question_n for_o whether_o or_o no_o there_o be_v such_o a_o union_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o will_v serve_v the_o cardinal_n turn_n i_o will_v leave_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_n by_o this_o short_a and_o faithful_a account_n of_o that_o epistle_n first_o then_o he_o prove_v unanswerable_o by_o numerous_a and_o apposite_a testimony_n of_o every_o age_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o constant_a universal_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o church_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a without_o ever_o insert_v into_o the_o definition_n of_o it_o any_o thing_n relate_v to_o its_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n as_o to_o a_o visible_a head._n nay_o 400.415_o p._n 400.415_o second_o that_o all_o the_o most_o learned_a lover_n of_o antiquity_n and_o godly_a opposer_n of_o novelty_n in_o the_o roman_a communion_n both_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o ever_o since_o have_v retain_v that_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o stick_v to_o the_o ancient_a definition_n and_o three_o 415.419_o p._n 415.419_o that_o canisius_n and_o bellarmin_n have_v egregious_o innovate_v in_o their_o doctrine_n by_o add_v to_o the_o ancient_a definition_n such_o thing_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o all_o antiquity_n and_o mean_v while_o that_o they_o oppose_v each_o other_o canisius_n make_v it_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v under_o a_o capite_fw-la a_o uno_n &_o summo_fw-la post_fw-la christum_fw-la capite_fw-la monarch_n and_o give_v no_o place_n in_o his_o definition_n of_o it_o to_o other_o governor_n to_o who_o the_o church_n also_o be_v to_o be_v unite_v whereas_o bellarmin_n make_v a_o aristocracy_n wherein_o one_o be_v chief_a at_o least_o 2._o least_o esse_fw-la caetum_fw-la hominum_fw-la etc._n etc._n colligatum_fw-la sub_fw-la regimine_fw-la legitimorum_fw-la pastorum_fw-la ac_fw-la praecipue_fw-la unius_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la vicarii_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la de_fw-fr eccl._n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o a_o temper_a and_o limit_a monarchy_n essential_a to_o the_o church_n go_v in_o this_o matter_n against_o antiquity_n against_o canisius_n and_o against_o himself_o in_o that_o he_o elsewhere_o make_v antiquity_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o a_o doctrine_n when_o the_o first_o author_n can_v be_v name_v and_o point_v to_o which_o be_v his_o own_o case_n and_o canisius_n as_o to_o this_o doctrine_n he_o reflect_v upon_o both_o of_o they_o 419.428_o p._n 418_o 419.428_o for_o ill_a logic_n in_o these_o definition_n and_o show_v how_o they_o destroy_v each_o other_o he_o censure_v the_o follower_n of_o canisius_n sharp_o and_o judicious_o and_o then_o remark_n that_o though_o bellarmine_n have_v great_a authority_n among_o divine_n yet_o canisius_n definition_n be_v more_o general_o receive_v and_o that_o for_o four_o reason_n because_o there_o be_v more_o court-flattery_n in_o it_o because_o it_o be_v put_v into_o catechism_n which_o the_o other_o be_v not_o and_o so_o stick_v by_o virtue_n of_o a_o early_a impression_n because_o some_o man_n be_v mad_a upon_o novelty_n and_o last_o other_o insufferable_o ignorant_a as_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_n tradition_n the_o principle_n of_o true_a theology_n four_o he_o think_v they_o have_v do_v harm_n to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o 430._o p._n 430._o for_o want_v of_o logic_n they_o have_v confound_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o state_n of_o it_o 2._o they_o have_v neglect_v st._n paul_n
direction_n of_o not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o etc._n etc._n 3._o be_v condemn_v by_o tertullian_n who_o bid_v we_o adhere_v to_o what_o be_v first_o and_o 4._o by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n and_o 5._o have_v give_v ill_a example_n by_o which_o the_o reformer_n can_v justify_v themselves_o and_o last_o have_v plain_o condemn_v several_a pope_n and_o the_o whole_a lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a iii_o as_o not_o sufficient_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v since_o their_o notion_n of_o it_o can_v not_o content_v those_o which_o come_v after_o they_o a_o great_a injury_n and_o of_o dangerous_a consequence_n last_o upon_o a_o comparison_n of_o one_o with_o the_o other_o etc._n p._n 432_o etc._n etc._n and_o of_o both_o with_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n he_o look_v upon_o bellarmin_n definition_n as_o the_o better_a of_o the_o two_o because_o it_o may_v be_v so_o mollify_v by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o word_n praecipuè_fw-la chief_o which_o be_v in_o it_o as_o to_o admit_v of_o a_o tolerable_a reconciliation_n with_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o ancient_n which_o as_o he_o show_v can_v no_o way_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o canisius_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a he_o conclude_v 450._o p._n 450._o that_o however_o bellarmin_n may_v be_v preferable_a if_o either_o of_o they_o be_v necessary_a yet_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o catholic_n to_o make_v their_o complaint_n of_o innovate_a which_o they_o heap_v upon_o heretic_n to_o appear_v just_a so_o long_o as_o they_o themselves_o shall_v retain_v such_o a_o novel_a definition_n and_o that_o if_o gregory_n viith_n rule_n be_v observe_v viz._n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v draw_v into_o example_n or_o authority_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o father_n then_o even_o this_o his_o definition_n though_o it_o have_v be_v receive_v yet_o aught_o to_o be_v reject_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o accurate_a writer_n as_o he_o be_v deserve_o call_v by_o 319._o by_o letter_n to_o bp._n of_o linc._n p._n 319._o f._n walsh_n have_v argue_v to_o the_o utter_a confusion_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n from_o union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n or_o of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o for_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n now_o which_o never_o be_v think_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o for_o 1500_o year_n together_o and_o which_o their_o own_o most_o learned_a lover_n of_o antiquity_n and_o pious_a opposer_n of_o novelty_n do_v not_o think_v essential_a to_o it_o at_o this_o day_n and_o where_o be_v the_o so_o much_o boast_a consent_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o faith._n i_o will_v know_v of_o those_o gentleman_n who_o be_v at_o such_o perfect_a agreement_n among_o themselves_o what_o this_o church_n be_v bellarmine_n answer_v one_o thing_n canisius_n another_o so_o contrary_a that_o if_o one_o speak_v true_a the_o other_o must_v needs_o have_v tell_v i_o that_o which_o be_v false_a and_o while_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o former_a be_v follow_v by_o some_o and_o that_o of_o the_o late_a which_o be_v the_o worse_o be_v more_o general_o receive_v launoy_n and_o many_o more_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a sort_n stick_v to_o the_o ancient_n who_o be_v as_o different_a from_o both_o as_o they_o be_v from_o one_o another_o and_o yet_o after_o all_o we_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o they_o be_v perfect_o agree_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o this_o invisible_a unintelligible_a union_n show_v plain_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o true_a church_n one_o will_v hardly_o think_v that_o they_o be_v in_o earnest_n unless_o by_o union_n they_o mean_v a_o equal_a resolution_n to_o carry_v on_o the_o dispute_n as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v contend_v and_o no_o long_o which_o kind_n of_o union_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o almost_o every_o term_n in_o westminster-hall_n where_o one_o may_v see_v two_o party_n prosecute_n one_o another_o with_o all_o imaginable_a vigour_n who_o yet_o resolve_v to_o be_v quiet_a when_o the_o bench_n have_v make_v they_o so_o not_o that_o the_o party_n who_o be_v cast_v in_o the_o suit_n must_v needs_o change_v his_o opinion_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n because_o the_o last_o verdict_n be_v against_o he_o but_o that_o if_o a_o new_a trial_n will_v not_o be_v grant_v he_o be_v bind_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o court_n because_o it_o have_v a_o sheriff_n with_o the_o posse_fw-la comitatus_fw-la to_o put_v it_o into_o execution_n thus_o they_o that_o make_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o they_o that_o make_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o council_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unite_v in_o a_o resolution_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a sensible_a obligation_n upon_o they_o to_o profess_v that_o they_o will_v acquiesce_v in_o its_o determination_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o may_v undoubted_o quarrel_v among_o themselves_o about_o question_n of_o such_o mighty_a importance_n as_o that_o we_o mention_v even_o now_o and_o this_o without_o breach_n of_o union_n among_o themselves_o till_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o plenary_a council_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o both_o come_v to_o part_v they_o which_o yet_o will_v be_v long_o enough_o first_o if_o each_o side_n of_o the_o question_n be_v abet_v with_o numerous_a and_o able_a party_n that_o be_v at_o present_a both_o of_o they_o resolve_v to_o submit_v absolute_o to_o the_o church_n lest_o one_o of_o they_o upon_o a_o unseasonable_a sentence_n shall_v be_v provoke_v to_o change_v its_o resolution_n and_o thus_o as_o we_o observe_v before_o the_o question_n about_o the_o immaculate_a conception_n have_v be_v leave_v undecided_a so_o long_o lest_o by_o determine_v that_o a_o more_o dangerous_a question_n shall_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o disoblige_v party_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v so_o happen_v that_o the_o church_n can_v well_o avoid_v declare_v herself_o in_o such_o a_o case_n this_o new-fashioned_a union_n go_v forward_o still_o though_o she_o speak_v so_o ambiguous_o that_o each_o party_n fancy_v the_o sentence_n to_o be_v on_o its_o own_o side_n which_o be_v do_v often_o at_o trent_n with_o great_a application_n and_o art_n particular_o in_o the_o decree_n concern_v grace_n and_o assurance_n of_o be_v justify_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v finish_v soto_n and_o vega_n differ_v not_o only_o as_o much_o but_o something_o more_o than_o they_o do_v at_o first_o for_o now_o they_o have_v a_o new_a question_n to_o debate_v viz._n on_o which_o side_n the_o council_n have_v decree_v and_o so_o they_o fall_v to_o write_v great_a book_n upon_o it_o against_o one_o another_o but_o for_o all_o this_o they_o be_v admirable_o agree_v because_o they_o agree_v in_o submission_n to_o the_o council_n i_o proceed_v to_o show_v iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o which_o point_n will_v i_o hope_v yield_v some_o discourse_n that_o will_v be_v more_o useful_a than_o bare_o to_o discover_v mistake_v and_o expose_v sophistry_n for_o here_o i_o shall_v represent_v as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v the_o true_a ground_n and_o notion_n of_o church-unity_n and_o then_o see_v who_o have_v most_o reason_n to_o pretend_v to_o it_o they_o or_o we_o 1._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o submit_v to_o one_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a unity_n and_o therefore_o mention_v by_o st._n paul_n among_o the_o principal_a reason_n why_o the_o church_n be_v one_o body_n 5._o eph._n four_o 5._o one_o lord._n 2._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o summary_o expound_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o therefore_o to_o one_o lord_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o forementioned_a place_n add_v one_o faith._n 3._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n one_o baptism_n by_o which_o we_o be_v all_o admit_v into_o the_o same_o state_n of_o duty_n and_o of_o privilege_n undertake_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o gain_v a_o right_a to_o the_o promise_v thereof_o thus_o say_v st._n paul_n 13._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 13._o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptise_a into_o one_o body_n and_o the_o like_a unity_n be_v infer_v from_o the_o other_o sacrament_n 17._o 1_o cor._n x._o 17._o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread._n and_o again_o
mere_o unity_n that_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o unity_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n nor_o be_v unity_n the_o mark_n of_o a_o pure_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v upon_o term_n of_o obedience_n to_o god_n of_o charity_n to_o one_o another_o of_o keep_v the_o faith_n unmix_v with_o error_n and_o innovation_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n free_a from_o material_a defect_n and_o forbid_a practice_n from_o hence_o also_o the_o folly_n of_o that_o conceit_n may_v be_v easy_o discern_v that_o in_o this_o divide_a state_n of_o christendom_n there_o must_v be_v one_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n exclusive_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v not_o in_o communion_n with_o she_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o because_o there_o be_v not_o that_o unity_n among_o christian_n which_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v therefore_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o and_o because_o they_o be_v not_o unite_v in_o one_o communion_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o unite_v in_o one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n that_o fond_a principle_n now_o mention_v be_v advance_v by_o the_o romanist_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o inference_n that_o because_o we_o grant_v the_o church_n to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o withal_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n therefore_o we_o be_v divide_v from_o they_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n ourselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v that_o one_o faith_n in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v unite_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n therefore_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n ourselves_o who_o have_v the_o unity_n of_o that_o faith_n too_o and_o moreover_o the_o unity_n of_o observe_v all_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n term_n of_o communion_n etc._n etc._n which_o they_o have_v not_o if_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n give_v just_a cause_n of_o offence_n or_o if_o another_o take_v offence_n where_o none_o be_v give_v this_o be_v indeed_o contrary_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o not_o utter_o inconsistent_a with_o their_o be_v member_n of_o it_o and_o if_o st._n paul_n be_v in_o the_o right_a when_o he_o say_v if_o the_o foot_n shall_v say_v because_o i_o be_o not_o the_o head_n i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o body_n be_v it_o therefore_o not_o of_o the_o body_n it_o will_v be_v also_o true_a that_o though_o the_o foot_n shall_v say_v to_o the_o hand_n thou_o be_v not_o of_o the_o body_n because_o thou_o be_v not_o the_o foot_n the_o hand_n will_v be_v of_o the_o body_n for_o all_o that_o as_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n which_o they_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o communion_n among_o themselves_o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_n unity_n of_o communion_n because_o the_o term_n of_o it_o be_v many_o of_o they_o unjust_a and_o unlawful_a whereas_o we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v as_o much_o unity_n of_o communion_n among_o ourselves_o as_o they_o have_v this_o also_o to_o say_v as_o we_o have_v abundant_o show_v that_o the_o term_n of_o our_o communion_n be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o just_a and_o lawful_a and_o therefore_o we_o be_v a_o catholic_n unity_n if_o there_o be_v some_o protestant_n that_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o we_o it_o be_v no_o more_o our_o fault_n than_o that_o the_o papist_n refuse_v to_o do_v so_o and_o though_o in_o point_n of_o interest_n this_o tend_v to_o weaken_v yet_o in_o controversy_n it_o can_v prejudice_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o reformation_n that_o part_n of_o the_o west_n that_o have_v leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v labour_v under_o discord_n that_o affect_v their_o very_a communion_n while_o she_o herself_o do_v not_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o cause_n against_o she_o they_o may_v be_v all_o in_o the_o right_n where_o truth_n be_v maintain_v against_o a_o corrupt_a church_n there_o may_v yet_o be_v disobedience_n to_o authority_n overvalue_v question_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n a_o great_a stress_n lay_v upon_o opinion_n and_o practice_n than_o the_o cause_n will_v bear_v and_o this_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o break_v christian_a communion_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n gross_a error_n may_v be_v maintain_v and_o with_o one_o consent_n impose_v upon_o the_o world_n by_o the_o other_o church_n and_o all_o the_o while_n the_o difference_n how_o weighty_a soever_o that_o happen_v by_o the_o bye_n may_v be_v so_o overrule_v by_o force_n and_o power_n and_o the_o sensible_a interest_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o affect_v their_o communion_n with_o one_o another_o but_o for_o the_o reason_n already_o lay_v down_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a thing_n to_o choose_v a_o church_n by_o the_o mark_n of_o such_o unity_n in_o short_a if_o we_o will_v in_o all_o respect_n keep_v within_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o profess_v true_a doctrine_n by_o lead_v good_a life_n by_o a_o charitable_a spirit_n and_o behaviour_n towards_o all_o christian_n by_o frequent_v prayer_n and_o sacrament_n and_o by_o submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o lawful_a guide_n in_o all_o thing_n of_o indifference_n and_o expedience_n and_o then_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o whatever_o other_o do_v we_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o though_o the_o church_n after_o all_o be_v not_o that_o one_o body_n in_o all_o respect_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o which_o it_o will_v be_v if_o all_o man_n do_v their_o duty_n yet_o that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v such_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o as_o all_o other_o ought_v to_o be_v likewise_o now_o all_o this_o unity_n we_o may_v keep_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o we_o can_v keep_v it_o all_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o term_n thereof_o now_o stand_v but_o if_o this_o unity_n be_v not_o enough_o when_o once_o the_o romanist_n can_v prove_v that_o union_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o union_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o all_o that_o she_o believe_v and_o teach_v be_v also_o necessary_a to_o our_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o even_o to_o our_o maintain_v that_o unity_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v among_o all_o christian_n we_o will_v also_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o believe_v as_o the_o roman_a church_n believe_v but_o not_o till_o then_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o eight_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n octava_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la l._n four_o c._n 11._o imprimatur_fw-la june_n 4._o 1687._o hen._n maurice_n see_v the_o new_a covenant_n be_v the_o charter_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v found_v and_o all_o the_o blessing_n which_o this_o covenant_n promise_n be_v appropriate_v to_o that_o sacred_a society_n to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o it_o be_v doubtless_o a_o matter_n of_o vast_a importance_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v but_o that_o the_o bless_a jesus_n the_o most_o concern_v and_o careful_a friend_n of_o soul_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v be_v sufficient_o mindful_a to_o leave_v such_o plain_a and_o easy_a direction_n behind_o he_o how_o we_o may_v find_v his_o church_n and_o satisfy_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o be_v in_o fellowship_n with_o it_o or_o no_o as_o that_o neither_o the_o learned_a nor_o unlearned_a may_v be_v leave_v in_o the_o dark_a for_o resolution_n in_o such_o a_o momentous_a enquiry_n but_o how_o much_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v it_o her_o business_n to_o snarl_v and_o perplex_v several_a point_n of_o religion_n which_o our_o saviour_n leave_v plain_a and_o obvious_a enough_o to_o all_o capacity_n be_v too_o notorious_a and_o in_o nothing_o more_o than_o in_o this_o how_o to_o discover_v and_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n in_o order_n to_o which_o her_o most_o learned_a doctor_n and_o particular_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n have_v give_v we_o certain_a note_n by_o which_o as_o they_o pretend_v the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v distinguish_v by_o honest_a and_o diligent_a inquiry_n from_o all_o false_a church_n whatsoever_o but_o how_o far_o these_o note_n be_v from_o perform_v what_o be_v promise_v for_o they_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v upon_o a_o very_a fair_a examination_n of_o the_o seven_o first_o of_o of_o they_o i_o proceed_v therefore_o to_o the_o eight_o viz._n sanctity_n of_o
true_a catholic_n church_n be_v only_o the_o whole_a of_o all_o those_o simuular_a part_n or_o all_o true_a church_n together_o whatsoever_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v beside_o its_o be_v the_o whole_a all_o the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v of_o which_o it_o do_v consist_v and_o consequent_o if_o that_o be_v unerring_a these_o must_v be_v so_o also_o for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o whole_a which_o consist_v of_o all_o the_o part_n shall_v be_v unerring_a unless_o all_o the_o part_n be_v unerring_a if_o therefore_o not_o to_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n all_o true_a church_n must_v necessary_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o consequent_o all_o those_o must_v be_v false_a church_n which_o profess_v any_o error_n than_o which_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o proposition_n in_o religion_n more_o notorious_o false_a it_o be_v true_a whatsoever_o church_n err_v in_o any_o fundamental_a article_n of_o religion_n do_v thereby_o cease_v from_o be_v a_o true_a church_n because_o those_o article_n be_v the_o very_a foundation_n upon_o which_o every_o true_a church_n stand_v and_o therefore_o when_o any_o church_n remove_v they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o it_o must_v necessary_o sink_v from_o the_o very_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n into_o a_o false_a and_o heretical_a communion_n but_o there_o be_v many_o error_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o touch_n or_o in_o the_o least_o affect_v the_o fundamental_o of_o religion_n and_o these_o a_o true_a church_n may_v possible_o profess_v and_o yet_o maintain_v her_o foundation_n firm_a and_o unshaken_a and_o so_o long_o as_o a_o church_n profess_v all_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v so_o far_o a_o true_a church_n though_o together_o with_o that_o it_o shall_v profess_v contrary_a to_o some_o other_o truth_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v its_o profess_v any_o error_n which_o do_v not_o contradict_v any_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n make_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o false_a church_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o its_o profession_n which_o profess_v all_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o sound_n and_o constitute_v a_o true_a church_n if_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o error_n in_o religion_n be_v sufficient_a to_o destroy_v the_o verity_n of_o a_o church_n than_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o truth_n must_v be_v necessary_a to_o find_v it_o because_o every_o true_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o error_n can_v destroy_v it_o but_o what_o take_v away_o the_o truth_n which_o find_v and_o therefore_o unless_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o truth_n it_o can_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o error_n and_o consequent_o none_o can_v be_v true_a church_n but_o such_o as_o profess_v every_o true_a proposition_n in_o religion_n which_o be_v admit_v the_o profession_n of_o every_o true_a church_n must_v contain_v almost_o as_o many_o article_n as_o itself_o do_v contain_v communicant_n and_o indeed_o if_o none_o can_v be_v true_a church_n but_o such_o as_o profess_v no_o error_n no_o two_o church_n whatsoever_o can_v differ_v in_o any_o opinion_n though_o never_o so_o inconsiderable_a but_o one_o of_o the_o two_o must_v be_v a_o false_a church_n because_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o opinion_n there_o must_v be_v a_o error_n on_o one_o side_n or_o other_o as_o for_o instance_n there_o be_v a_o very_a early_a difference_n in_o opinion_n between_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n in_o which_o if_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n to_o be_v sure_o the_o other_o must_v be_v erroneous_a and_o if_o neither_o both_o do_v then_o the_o err_a church_n continue_v a_o true_a church_n or_o no_o notwithstanding_o its_o error_n if_o it_o do_v than_o a_o true_a church_n may_v err_v in_o its_o profession_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a church_n still_o if_o it_o do_v not_o than_o both_o be_v false_a church_n because_o though_o each_o believe_v that_o the_o other_o err_v yet_o for_o a_o great_a while_o they_o mutual_o own_v each_o other_o for_o true_a church_n in_o which_o if_o every_o error_n destroy_v the_o verity_n of_o a_o church_n they_o both_o of_o they_o err_v and_o thereupon_o both_o cease_v to_o be_v true_a church_n and_o if_o we_o inquire_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o now_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o several_a instance_n it_o profess_v now_o quite_o contrary_a to_o what_o it_o profess_v heretofore_o vid._n note_v 3d_o p._n 65._o either_o therefore_o the_o profession_n of_o some_o error_n be_v consistent_a with_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v either_o have_v be_v a_o false_a church_n heretofore_o or_o be_v a_o false_a church_n now_o and_o see_v the_o roman_a church_n now_o consist_v of_o several_a church_n some_o of_o which_o profess_v contrary_a to_o one_o another_o as_o particular_o in_o that_o celebrate_a question_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v superior_a to_o a_o general_n council_n or_o a_o general_n council_n to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o if_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n there_o must_v be_v a_o erroneous_a profession_n on_o one_o side_n or_o other_o and_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n err_v in_o any_o of_o its_o part_n how_o can_v it_o be_v unerring_a in_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v nothing_o but_o all_o the_o part_n together_o for_o if_o she_o allow_v any_o church_n to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o profess_v any_o error_n she_o err_v herself_o suppose_v a_o unerring_a profession_n to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o be_v herself_o a_o false_a church_n if_o she_o do_v not_o then_o in_o receive_v church_n which_o differ_v in_o their_o profession_n she_o receive_v into_o her_o communion_n some_o that_o be_v no_o true_a church_n which_o i_o doubt_v will_v go_v as_o far_o towards_o the_o unchurch_a she_o as_o the_o profession_n of_o most_o error_n whatsoever_o in_o short_a therefore_o if_o not_o to_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n in_o any_o matter_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n all_o true_a church_n must_v necessary_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o consequent_o none_o can_v be_v true_a church_n which_o in_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o profess_v erroneous_o which_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v be_v utter_o false_a and_o which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a will_v perhaps_o as_o much_o damnify_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o sober_a and_o honest_a enquirer_n as_o any_o one_o church_n now_o extant_a in_o the_o world._n 2._o second_o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o kind_n of_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o thing_n of_o another_o kind_n otherwise_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o it_o shall_v true_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o but_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n be_v not_o peculiar_a to_o true_a church_n for_o see_v there_o may_v be_v a_o schism_n without_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n or_o heresy_n we_o must_v either_o allow_v schismatical_a society_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v true_a church_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v sure_o will_v never_o admit_v or_o that_o it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n peculiar_a to_o true_a church_n not_o to_o err_v in_o their_o faith._n that_o which_o may_v be_v common_a to_o schismatical_a communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o true_a church_n suppose_v schismatical_a communion_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o the_o true_a part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o own_v that_o there_o have_v be_v schism_n which_o do_v not_o err_v in_o their_o faith_n and_o yet_o be_v without_o the_o true_a church_n for_o so_o in_o his_o forecited_a cap._n 2._o there_o may_v be_v doctrine_n pure_a say_v he_o from_o all_o error_n in_o a_o false_a church_n for_o so_o pure_a schismatic_n as_o heretofore_o the_o luciferian_o and_o donatist_n have_v in_o the_o begin_n very_o sound_a doctrine_n among_o they_o and_o yet_o be_v without_o the_o true_a church_n where_o by_o the_o way_n it_o be_v evident_a the_o good_a man_n have_v quite_o forget_v that_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v hereafter_o to_o be_v one_o of_o his_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o if_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n the_o note_n of_o
paul_n as_o we_o read_v act_v 13.45_o and_o act._n 28.24_o etc._n etc._n after_o christianity_n have_v for_o above_o 300_o year_n be_v struggle_v to_o get_v ground_n in_o the_o world_n how_o strange_o do_v arianism_n on_o the_o sudden_a prevail_v against_o it_o one_o will_v have_v think_v that_o after_o people_n have_v for_o some_o time_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n they_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v easy_o tempt_v to_o embrace_v so_o gross_a a_o error_n but_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o efficacy_n of_o this_o heresy_n that_o as_o theodoret_n relate_v the_o emperor_n constantius_n in_o a_o discourse_n with_o liberius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n urge_v it_o as_o a_o argument_n against_o his_o intercession_n on_o behalf_n of_o athanasius_n pray_v say_v he_o how_o big_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v you_o 16._o theod._n lib._n 2._o hist_o eccl._n c._n 16._o that_o you_o alone_o pretend_v to_o stand_v up_o for_o a_o wicked_a man_n so_o he_o call_v athanasius_n and_o to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o the_o bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v a_o good_a argument_n that_o he_o immediate_o reply_v the_o true_a faith_n lose_v nothing_o by_o my_o be_v alone_o for_o there_o be_v former_o but_o three_o find_v who_o resist_v the_o king_n commandment_n 3.18_o dan._n 3.18_o neither_o do_v the_o same_o heresy_n prevail_v only_o at_o home_n among_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n but_o be_v likewise_o victorious_a abroad_o among_o the_o idolatrous_a nation_n of_o which_o the_o same_o author_n give_v we_o a_o notable_a instance_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o one_o vlphilas_o a_o bishop_n of_o great_a authority_n among_o the_o goth_n ult_n theod._n lib._n 3._o c._n ult_n be_v corrupt_v by_o eudoxius_n persuade_v that_o whole_a nation_n to_o embrace_v it_o about_o 300_o year_n after_o so_o general_a a_o defection_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n by_o arianism_n the_o impostor_n mahomet_n arise_v 718._o paulus_n aemyl_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la gestis_fw-la francorum_fw-la calvis_fw-la chronol_n ab_fw-la ann._n 631_o ad_fw-la an._n 718._o who_o doctrine_n in_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n overrun_v a_o great_a part_n both_o of_o the_o east_n and_o south_n and_o do_v continue_v so_o far_o to_o prevail_v that_o when_o brerewood_n make_v the_o computation_n of_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v it_o he_o reckon_v they_o to_o be_v six_o part_n of_o thirty_o into_o which_o he_o suppose_v 14._o brerewood_n inquiry_n c._n 14._o the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v divide_v whereas_o he_o allot_v but_o five_o part_n to_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o christian_n of_o what_o denomination_n soever_o as_o to_o this_o particular_a the_o cardinal_n urge_v that_o mahumetanism_n be_v propagate_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o not_o by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o assertion_n beside_o that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o little_a reason_n the_o cardinal_n have_v to_o make_v this_o objection_n and_o that_o mahomet_n must_v have_v first_o convert_v those_o by_o his_o doctrine_n who_o he_o afterward_o make_v use_n of_o to_o convert_v other_o by_o force_n i_o shall_v set_v down_o this_o remarkable_a instance_n whereby_o it_o will_v manifest_o appear_v how_o much_o the_o mahometan_a missionary_n even_o without_o the_o assistance_n of_o any_o outward_a force_n may_v sometime_o prove_v too_o hard_o for_o the_o roman_a one_o bati_fw-la king_n of_o the_o tartar_n have_v waste_v the_o christian_a territory_n return_n into_o scythia_n leave_v all_o europe_n in_o a_o great_a consternation_n pope_n innocent_a the_o four_o in_o the_o year_n 1246_o from_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n send_v a_o company_n of_o religious_a man_n a_o long_a journey_n to_o he_o to_o exhort_v he_o to_o worship_v the_o one_o live_a and_o true_a god_n and_o his_o only_a son_n jesus_n christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o abstain_v from_o shed_v christian_n blood._n when_o the_o tartar_n have_v hear_v the_o pope_n request_n he_o promise_v for_o five_o year_n not_o to_o trouble_v the_o christian_n 25._o laur._n surii_fw-la comment_fw-fr p._n 25._o but_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o pope_n messenger_n be_v go_v some_o saracen_n come_v exhort_v the_o tartar_n to_o embrace_v the_o mahometan_a sect_n rather_o than_o christianity_n and_o what_o they_o say_v have_v such_o effect_n especial_o upon_o the_o emperor_n that_o they_o embrace_v mahometanism_n and_o keep_v to_o it_o still_o in_o this_o case_n the_o two_o doctrine_n have_v very_o fair_a play_n for_o the_o tartar_n be_v prejudice_v on_o neither_o side_n neither_o can_v any_o force_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o compel_v they_o to_o receive_v one_o doctrine_n more_o than_o the_o other_o if_o either_o have_v the_o advantage_n it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o that_o have_v get_v the_o start_n but_o be_v soon_o whole_o reject_v and_o the_o other_o have_v ever_o since_o be_v embrace_v be_v not_o those_o instance_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v sufficient_a to_o show_v what_o little_a judgement_n can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o church_n from_o the_o reception_n which_o its_o doctrine_n have_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o world_n i_o may_v here_o add_v the_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n account_n heretic_n frumentius_n send_v by_o athanasius_n convert_v the_o indian_n moses_n a_o alexandrian_a monk_n the_o saracen_n and_o concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o moscovite_n paulus_n jovius_n thus_o speak_v above_o five_o hundred_o year_n since_o say_v he_o moscovit_fw-la de_fw-fr legatione_fw-la moscovit_fw-la the_o moscovite_n worship_v the_o heathen_a god_n jupiter_n etc._n etc._n but_o then_o be_v they_o first_o initiate_v in_o the_o christian_a rite_n when_o the_o greek_a bishop_n out_o of_o a_o inconstant_a temper_n begin_v to_o dissent_v from_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o the_o moscovite_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o with_o a_o most_o hearty_a belief_n follow_v those_o religion_n rite_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o their_o greek_a teacher_n i_o may_v likewise_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o great_a efficacy_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n which_o in_o the_o space_n of_o fifty_o year_n when_o bishop_n jewel_n set_v out_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o apology_n notwithstanding_o the_o great_a opposition_n which_o have_v be_v make_v against_o it_o have_v overrun_v whole_a nation_n 36._o defence_n of_o apol._n p._n 36._o and_o mighty_o prevail_v even_o in_o those_o kingdom_n where_o the_o prince_n and_o governor_n be_v still_o popish_a the_o distinction_n which_o bellarmin_n make_v that_o heretic_n do_v not_o convert_v man_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n 12._o bill_n de_fw-fr not._n l._n 4._o c._n 12._o and_o that_o the_o goth_n be_v cheat_v into_o arianism_n that_o they_o pervert_v catholic_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o if_o by_o heretic_n man_n may_v be_v convert_v or_o cheat_v into_o what_o be_v false_a if_o catholic_n may_v be_v so_o easy_o pervert_v then_o the_o effect_n which_o any_o doctrine_n have_v upon_o man_n mind_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o their_o be_v member_n of_o a_o true_a church_n who_o profess_v it_o if_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o who_o be_v convert_v have_v receive_v be_v a_o true_a doctrine_n this_o indeed_o be_v a_o good_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o stand_v and_o fall_v by_o it_o but_o their_o bare_a conversion_n be_v no_o note_n at_o all_o because_o as_o to_o its_o be_v receive_v or_o not_o receive_v error_n have_v have_v the_o same_o fate_n in_o the_o world_n as_o truth_n itself_o have_v have_v and_o of_o this_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o be_v enough_o sensible_a who_o have_v forget_v what_o he_o have_v make_v to_o be_v the_o nine_o note_n of_o the_o church_n do_v repeat_v in_o a_o oration_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o controversy_n this_o objection_n of_o the_o reformist_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a say_v they_o that_o that_o doctrine_n shall_v not_o be_v from_o god_n 1593._o orat._n in_o scholis_fw-la habita_fw-la edit_fw-la in._n 8o._o ingolst_n 1593._o which_o in_o so_o short_a time_n have_v overrun_v so_o many_o people_n province_n and_o kingdom_n and_o then_o make_v this_o answer_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o philosophise_v after_o this_o manner_n we_o shall_v have_v much_o more_o reason_n to_o wonder_v why_o the_o alcoran_n of_o mahomet_n in_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v so_o easy_o prevail_v have_v thus_o in_o the_o general_a show_v that_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v so_o but_o yet_o that_o i_o may_v further_o show_v what_o little_a reason_n that_o church_n of_o all_o
other_o have_v to_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v the_o character_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n i_o desire_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o these_o follow_v particular_n may_v be_v consider_v 1._o that_o although_o we_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o many_o error_n and_o mistake_v yet_o we_o allow_v it_o to_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n now_o this_o very_a mixture_n of_o truth_n may_v perhaps_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o make_v proselyte_n but_o than_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v but_o that_o such_o proselyte_n may_v likewise_o have_v embrace_v the_o error_n which_o be_v mix_v with_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o truth_n itself_o the_o indian_n who_o conversion_n to_o the_o romish_a faith_n i_o shall_v speak_v of_o afterward_o be_v not_o so_o void_a of_o reason_n but_o that_o if_o they_o compare_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o conqueror_n with_o their_o own_o worship_n they_o may_v be_v persuade_v to_o embrace_v the_o former_a rather_o than_o adhere_v still_o to_o the_o latter_a and_o although_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o be_v but_o half_o convert_v to_o the_o truth_n yet_o it_o be_v better_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v thus_o than_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v convert_v at_o all_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o be_v much_o near_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o whole_a truth_n than_o they_o be_v former_o which_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n and_o therefore_o we_o reckon_v those_o but_o a_o ill_a sort_n of_o protestant_n who_o will_v rather_o have_v man_n turk_n and_o infidel_n than_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o conversion_n of_o never_o so_o many_o to_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o argument_n of_o its_o not_o be_v a_o corrupt_a church_n as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o maintain_v such_o gross_a error_n as_o it_o do_v although_o accompany_v with_o such_o a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n as_o may_v be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o bring_v over_o such_o as_o have_v before_o little_a or_o no_o knowledge_n thereof_o 2._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n because_o it_o be_v so_o much_o alter_v from_o what_o it_o former_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o the_o saint_n afterward_o new_a doctrine_n insensible_o creep_v into_o and_o be_v receive_v by_o that_o church_n and_o at_o last_o matter_n come_v to_o be_v settle_v as_o we_o now_o find_v they_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n this_o have_v be_v often_o clear_v by_o learned_a man_n and_o in_o some_o of_o those_o discourse_n which_o have_v of_o late_o be_v write_v etc._n barrow_n of_o the_o pope_n suprem_fw-la discourse_v of_o transub_v disc_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o saint_n disc_n of_o commun_n in_o one_o kind_n vindicat._n of_o the_o answ_n to_o some_o late_a paper_n etc._n etc._n some_o of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n have_v be_v trace_v step_n by_o step_n and_o the_o manner_n now_o they_o come_v to_o be_v receive_v set_v down_o and_o in_o other_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v compare_v with_o herself_o and_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v be_v show_v to_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n from_o what_o be_v hold_v some_o age_n ago_o now_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o thing_n that_o be_v different_a shall_v be_v the_o distinguish_a character_n of_o that_o which_o be_v always_o the_o same_o since_o than_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v ready_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n thereof_o since_o in_o some_o age_n those_o doctrine_n have_v prevail_v in_o it_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o which_o have_v prevail_v in_o other_o 3._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n where_o those_o who_o embrace_v it_o be_v hinder_v from_o thorough_o examine_v it_o for_o without_o a_o thorough_a examination_n it_o never_o can_v be_v right_o understand_v and_o what_o efficacy_n can_v it_o have_v upon_o his_o mind_n who_o do_v not_o right_o understand_v it_o now_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n exact_v of_o the_o member_n of_o her_o communion_n a_o tame_a submission_n to_o and_o compliance_n with_o whatever_o she_o propose_v to_o their_o belief_n and_o practice_n and_o by_o forbid_v they_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n she_o take_v from_o they_o the_o use_n of_o that_o rule_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o judge_n of_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o her_o proposal_n how_o then_o can_v the_o reception_n of_o her_o doctrine_n be_v a_o note_n of_o she_o be_v a_o true_a church_n when_o perhaps_o not_o one_o among_o a_o thousand_o of_o her_o member_n who_o receeive_v it_o be_v capable_a of_o understanding_n what_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v 4._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n where_o art_n and_o force_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o make_v it_o prevail_v for_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n for_o cunning_a deceiver_n to_o impose_v upon_o unstable_a soul_n and_o it_o must_v be_v a_o great_a courage_n and_o constancy_n of_o mind_n which_o can_v make_v man_n for-go_a father_n and_o mother_n house_n and_o land_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o sake_n of_o truth_n now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v take_v this_o course_n to_o propagate_v her_o doctrine_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v by_o some_o of_o she_o own_o member_n there_o be_v say_v erasmus_n 23._o erasmus_n in_o annot._n in_o mat._n 23._o those_o who_o after_o a_o new_a example_n make_v christian_n by_o force_n but_o whilst_o they_o pretend_v the_o propagation_n of_o religion_n they_o do_v in_o reality_n study_v the_o enlargement_n of_o riches_n and_o power_n not_o unlike_o these_o be_v those_o monk_n who_o inveigle_v other_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o their_o order_n and_o do_v use_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o cunning_a to_o ensnare_v such_o as_o be_v young_a and_o unskilful_a and_o who_o neither_o understand_v themselves_o nor_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o stapleton_n declare_v very_o free_o 1582._o stapleton_n epist_n dedic_n de_fw-fr oper_n justific_n edit_fw-la paris_n 1582._o eo_fw-la sane_fw-la loco_fw-la haereses_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n heresy_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o their_o gordian_a knot_n be_v not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v by_o art_n and_o industry_n but_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o alexander_n and_o the_o club_n of_o hercules_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o subdue_v they_o than_o the_o harp_n of_o apollo_n i_o may_v quote_v several_a other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o inquisition_n in_o those_o place_n where_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o the_o extraordinary_a method_n which_o have_v of_o late_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o a_o neighbour_a nation_n to_o gain_v proselyte_n do_v sufficient_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v more_o depend_v upon_o something_o else_o than_o upon_o the_o efficacy_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o the_o make_n of_o convert_v which_o will_v more_o full_o appear_v if_o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o consider_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n which_o be_v fetch_v first_o from_o the_o scripture_n second_o from_o what_o happen_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n three_o from_o the_o particular_a instance_n which_o he_o give_v of_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v quote_v ps_n 19.7_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v perfect_a convert_v the_o soul_n and_o heb._n 4.12_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v quick_a and_o powerful_a and_o sharp_a than_o any_o two-edged_a sword_n pierce_v even_o to_o the_o divide_v asunder_o of_o soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o joint_n and_o marrow_n and_o be_v a_o discerner_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n it_o may_v be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o be_v by_o several_a expositor_n interpret_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o his_o doctrine_n 2._o that_o if_o they_o be_v both_o interpret_v of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o any_o doctrine_n yet_o that_o the_o efficacy_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o be_v whole_o internal_a as_o we_o before_o observe_v and_o consequent_o such_o as_o can_v be_v account_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o note_n of_o a_o church_n must_v be_v what_o any_o one_o can_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o 3._o suppose_v by_o these_o word_n
in_o their_o own_o tongue_n to_o have_v it_o in_o latin_a they_o stout_o resist_v he_o so_o that_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o may_v keep_v up_o his_o usurp_a authority_n be_v force_v to_o pretend_v that_o he_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o have_v it_o in_o their_o own_o language_n but_o among_o all_o his_o instance_n the_o cardinal_n have_v least_o reason_n to_o have_v mention_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indian_n and_o jew_n for_o as_o for_o the_o indian_n the_o unheard-of_a cruelty_n which_o even_o the_o popish_a historian_n relate_v to_o have_v be_v use_v towards_o they_o and_o their_o gross_a ignorance_n after_o their_o conversion_n be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n how_o little_a they_o be_v behold_v for_o it_o to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v they_o one_o will_v wonder_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o mankind_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o such_o inhuman_a barbarity_n as_o bartolomaeus_n casas_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o live_v in_o india_n relate_v the_o spaniard_n to_o have_v commit_v in_o abhorrence_n whereof_o acosta_n have_v a_o discourse_n on_o purpose_n to_o show_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o make_v war_n against_o the_o barbarian_n procur_v l._n 2._o c._n 2_o etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr ind._n salut_n procur_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n he_o afterward_o discourse_n of_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o indian_n assert_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v better_a instructor_n send_v they_o that_o those_o which_o they_o then_o have_v have_v be_v of_o such_o little_a use_n to_o they_o that_o after_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o find_v among_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o convert_v who_o understand_v two_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n 358._o l._n 4._o c._n 3._o p._n 358._o or_o have_v any_o apprehension_n what_o christ_n eternal_a life_n or_o the_o eucharist_n mean_v but_o this_o concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indian_n have_v already_o be_v mention_v in_o note_n the_o four_o as_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o convert_v the_o jew_n i_o shall_v only_o make_v mention_n of_o one_o instance_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o heraclius_n the_o emperor_n who_o write_v to_o dagobert_n the_o king_n of_o france_n that_o he_o will_v command_v all_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o dominion_n to_o turn_v christian_n 22._o aimoin_v four_o 22._o and_o either_o to_o banish_v or_o slay_v those_o who_o will_v not_o who_o according_o do_v so_o banish_v as_o many_o as_o will_v not_o be_v baptize_v since_o erasmus_n who_o know_v these_o matter_n well_o enough_o have_v so_o free_o declare_v that_o although_o their_o conversion_n be_v a_o thing_n much_o to_o be_v wish_v for_o yet_o that_o such_o course_n be_v take_v by_o some_o to_o effect_v it_o that_o of_o a_o wicked_a jew_n 23._o erasm_n anno●_n in_o mat._n 23._o it_o often_o happen_v there_o be_v make_v a_o christian_a much_o more_o wicked_a than_o he_o be_v before_o his_o conversion_n have_v thus_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n all_o that_o i_o shall_v add_v upon_o this_o subject_n shall_v be_v only_o this_o that_o the_o mean_a account_n some_o of_o our_o new_a convert_v have_v give_v of_o themselves_o and_o the_o motive_n of_o their_o change_n look_v not_o very_o favourable_a upon_o this_o nine_o note_n and_o make_v it_o suspicious_a that_o the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o the_o only_a thing_n that_o do_v the_o work_n but_o that_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n since_o the_o chief_a patron_n of_o the_o romish_a cause_n do_v at_o this_o time_n endeavour_v to_o disguise_v their_o religion_n with_o so_o much_o artifice_n and_o to_o represent_v it_o as_o like_o we_o as_o they_o can_v they_o do_v real_o think_v their_o doctrine_n by_o its_o own_o worth_n and_o excellency_n then_o most_o likely_a to_o prevail_v when_o it_o be_v make_v appear_v to_o be_v most_o akin_a to_o that_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o end_n errata_fw-la page_n 212._o line_n 26._o read_v set_v it_o in_o page_n 223._o line_n 22._o r._n the_o church_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o ten_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o holiness_n of_o life_n decima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la vitæ_fw-la auctorum_fw-la sive_fw-la primorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la nostrae_fw-la religionis_fw-la bellarm._n l._n four_o c._n 13._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la june_n 22._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o in_o this_o argument_n it_o may_v suffice_v if_o it_o be_v show_v i._n what_o the_o notion_n of_o holiness_n be_v ii_o that_o holiness_n be_v not_o proper_o a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n iii_o that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o so_o belong_v to_o the_o roman_a as_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o all_o other_o church_n and_o to_o appear_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o infallible_a character_n of_o the_o only_a fold_n of_o christ_n i._o for_o holiness_n it_o be_v of_o two_o kind_n holiness_n of_o call_v and_o dedication_n of_o mind_n and_o manner_n by_o holiness_n of_o call_v and_o dedication_n i_o mean_v the_o separation_n of_o person_n from_o the_o unbelieving_a and_o wicked_a world_n and_o the_o incorporate_n of_o they_o by_o baptism_n into_o the_o spiritual_a society_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o by_o such_o mean_n the_o dedicate_a of_o they_o to_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o evangelical_n covenant_n in_o this_o sense_n st._n paul_n tell_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 6.11_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o that_o they_o be_v wash_v and_o sanctify_v or_o by_o their_o christian_a call_v or_o dedication_n make_v sacred_a and_o holy._n by_o holiness_n of_o mind_n and_o manner_n to_o which_o bellarmin_n here_o give_v the_o name_n of_o probity_n a_o virtue_n commend_v by_o he_o but_o cold_o obey_v i_o understand_v the_o habitual_a private_a and_o public_a practice_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o true_a principle_n of_o it_o the_o love_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o it_o right_a reason_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v direct_v to_o its_o proper_a end_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o all_o reasonable_a creature_n for_o this_o kind_n of_o holiness_n st._n paul_n 5.23_o paul_n 1_o thess_n 5.23_o make_v pious_a application_n to_o god_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o say_v the_o very_a god_n of_o peace_n sanctify_v you_o whole_o and_o i_o pray_v god_n your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a to_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n now_o ii_o neither_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o holiness_n can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o first_o kind_a it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v holy_a and_o it_o be_v call_v holy_a in_o the_o creed_n before_o the_o epithet_n of_o catholic_n be_v insert_v into_o that_o sum_n of_o faith_n ecclesiam_fw-la faith_n s._n cypr._n epist_n 70._o p._n 190._o cum_fw-la dicimus_fw-la h._n e._n baptizandis_fw-la credis_fw-la in_o vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la &_o remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la per_fw-la sanctan_n ecclesiam_fw-la and_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n love_v it_o in_o such_o extraordinary_a manner_n that_o 27._o that_o ephes_n 5.25_o 26_o 27._o he_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v and_o cleanse_v it_o with_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n by_o the_o word_n by_o baptism_n and_o assent_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o may_v present_v it_o to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n any_o thing_n which_o may_v seem_v uncomely_a to_o christ_n to_o who_o she_o as_o supreme_a head_n be_v unite_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blemish_n this_o holiness_n of_o dedication_n be_v elegant_o set_v forth_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o oriental_a poesy_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o canticle_n in_o which_o be_v represent_v the_o spiritual_a marriage_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o chaste_a and_o unblemished_a church_n though_o some_o romanist_n have_v wrest_v these_o and_o other_o place_n which_o speak_v of_o her_o dovelike_a and_o undefiled_a nature_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o that_o which_o they_o please_v to_o call_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n 1._o virgin_n v._o coron_n preuves_fw-mi par_fw-fr l'_fw-fr escriture_n du_fw-fr contenu_fw-fr en_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr catholic_a p._n 1._o so_o ready_a be_v they_o who_o upbraid_v the_o reform_a with_o interpret_n scripture_n out_o of_o their_o own_o head_n to_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n themselves_o and_o with_o a_o much_o great_a mixture_n of_o
virtutes_fw-la magnas_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la facere_fw-la sublimis_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o admirabilis_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la regnum_fw-la coeleste_fw-la consequitur_fw-la quisquis_fw-la in_o his_o omnibus_fw-la invenitur_fw-la nisi_fw-la recti_fw-la &_o justi_fw-la itineris_fw-la observatione_fw-la gradiatur_fw-la cypr._n de_fw-fr unitat._n eccles_n st._n cyprian_n discourse_v of_o some_o that_o have_v break_v off_o from_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o signalise_v themselves_o by_o miracle_n quote_v that_o passage_n of_o st._n john_n ep._n 1._o ch_n 2._o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o the_o do_v such_o miracle_n be_v a_o high_a and_o admirable_a thing_n yet_o if_o they_o take_v not_o heed_n to_o go_v in_o the_o just_a and_o right_a way_n it_o give_v they_o no_o title_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o recti_fw-la &_o justi_fw-la itineris_fw-la observatio_fw-la be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v mere_o a_o good_a and_o virtuous_a life_n for_o that_o be_v acknowledge_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o some_o person_n inward_o wicked_a but_o outward_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n may_v work_v miracle_n as_o probable_o judas_n do_v among_o the_o other_o disciple_n but_o st._n cyprian_n mean_v it_o of_o those_o that_o have_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n and_o through_o schism_n have_v break_v off_o from_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o tenor_n of_o that_o discourse_n carry_v it_o 9_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d irenae_n advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 9_o irenaeus_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o prodigious_a error_n of_o marcus_n the_o heretic_n and_o yet_o two_o of_o the_o wonder_n he_o do_v viz._n when_o he_o be_v consecrate_v or_o give_v of_o thanks_o over_o the_o cup_n mix_v with_o wine_n draw_v out_o his_o invocation_n to_o a_o mighty_a length_n he_o make_v the_o cup_n appear_v of_o a_o purple_a or_o red_a colour_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o that_o grace_n that_o come_v from_o the_o place_n which_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o invocation_n distil_v its_o own_o blood_n into_o the_o cup_n that_o those_o that_o be_v present_a shall_v vehement_o desire_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o same_o draught_n that_o so_o that_o very_a grace_n boast_v of_o by_o the_o magician_n may_v actual_o flow_v into_o they_o too_o he_o further_a instance_n in_o a_o magic_a trick_n he_o have_v of_o fill_v a_o great_a cup_n with_o a_o much_o less_o and_o to_o the_o view_n of_o other_o inspire_v some_o of_o the_o seduce_v woman_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesy_v and_o the_o like_a this_o passage_n of_o irenaeus_n be_v quote_v verbatim_o by_o epiphanius_n who_o also_o call_v this_o marcus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o perfect_o skill_a in_o the_o magic_n art._n marcosii_n art._n epiphan_n in_o haeres_fw-la 34._o marcosii_n finem_fw-la marcosii_n august_n exposit_n in_o evang_v johann_n tractat._n 13._o versus_fw-la finem_fw-la st._n austin_n direct_v thus_o let_v no_o man_n say_v he_o vend_fw-mi fable_n among_o you_o both_o pontius_n wrought_v a_o miracle_n and_o donatus_n pray_v and_o god_n answer_v he_o from_o heaven_n first_o either_o they_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o or_o else_o they_o deceive_v other_o however_o suppose_v he_o can_v remove_v mountain_n yet_o say_v the_o apostle_n if_o i_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o he_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o shall_v have_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o have_v not_o divide_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o god_n have_v warn_v i_o against_o such_o wonder-monger_n if_o i_o may_v so_o call_v they_o mirabiliarios_fw-la they_o istos_fw-la mirabiliarios_fw-la in_o the_o latter_a day_n there_o shall_v arise_v false_a prophet_n do_v sign_n and_o wonder_n etc._n etc._n mark_v xiii_o ergo_fw-la cautos_fw-la nos_fw-la fecit_fw-la sponsus_fw-la quia_fw-la miraculis_fw-la decipi_fw-la non_fw-la debemus_fw-la therefore_o have_v our_o lord_n warn_v we_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v deceive_v by_o miracle_n and_o so_o he_o go_v on_o with_o that_o which_o we_o find_v in_o decret_a part_n 2._o caus_n 1._o quaest_n 1._o cap._n 56._o teneamus_fw-la ergo_fw-la unitatem_fw-la fratres_fw-la mei_fw-la praeter_fw-la vnitatem_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la facit_fw-la miracula_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o unity_n out_o of_o this_o unity_n even_o he_o that_o work_v miracle_n be_v nothing_o peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o raise_v the_o dead_a simon_n magus_n do_v many_o thing_n there_o be_v many_o christian_n that_o can_v do_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n neither_o what_o peter_n nor_o what_o simon_n do_v but_o what_o do_v they_o rejoice_v in_o that_o their_o name_n be_v waitten_v in_o heaven_n this_o father_n have_v many_o other_o passage_n of_o this_o kind_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o they_o be_v already_o so_o large_o quote_v in_o that_o excellent_a preface_n before_o the_o school_n of_o the_o eucharist_n late_o make_v english_a that_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n thither_o not_o only_o for_o that_o but_o also_o for_o the_o whole_a argument_n about_o miracle_n which_o may_v just_o have_v supersede_v this_o discourse_n upon_o the_o note_n of_o miracle_n have_v it_o be_v so_o order_v in_o its_o due_a place_n so_o that_o miracle_n mere_o we_o see_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n be_v never_o account_v a_o full_a and_o adequate_a note_n of_o any_o true_a church_n which_o in_o truth_n the_o cardinal_n himself_o after_o the_o great_a foundation_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v lay_v as_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o miracle_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n yield_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o very_a same_o chapter_n 14._o exit_fw-la miraculis_fw-la demonstratur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la quoad_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la vel_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la rei_fw-la sed_fw-la quoad_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la &_o certitudinem_fw-la credibilitatis_fw-la bel._n l._n four_o c._n 14._o that_o the_o church_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o miracle_n not_o as_o to_o the_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o only_o as_o to_o the_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o credibility_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o miracle_n may_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o that_o be_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o note_n by_o which_o we_o may_v give_v a_o good_a guess_n at_o the_o true_a church_n but_o can_v be_v certain_a for_o as_o one_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n express_v it_o miracula_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o diabolo_fw-it christo_fw-la &_o antichristo_fw-la sunt_fw-la communia_fw-la tim._n communia_fw-la espencaeus_fw-la in_o 2_o ad_fw-la tim._n miracle_n be_v common_a to_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n to_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n ii_o if_o miracle_n in_o general_a be_v no_o sufficient_a note_n or_o proof_n of_o any_o church_n whatever_o much_o less_o be_v those_o miracle_n allege_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o confirmation_n of_o those_o particular_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n wherein_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n differ_v from_o they_o much_o less_o i_o say_v be_v they_o any_o just_a note_n of_o their_o church_n or_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o variety_n of_o miracle_n offer_v to_o we_o in_o their_o history_n or_o in_o their_o legend_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o several_a doctrine_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n adoration_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n purgatory_n the_o bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o particular_a person_n that_o have_v flourish_v in_o their_o church_n now_o as_o to_o this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v these_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o second_o that_o many_o of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o these_o miracle_n be_v allege_v in_o confirmation_n of_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v express_o assert_v or_o warrant_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o rather_o bear_v a_o direct_a contrariety_n three_o that_o there_o be_v no_o tolerable_a ground_n for_o certainty_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o most_o of_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v make_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o church_n first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o the_o miracle_n under_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n be_v to_o confirm_v and_o establish_v that_o and_o the_o miracle_n perform_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o i_o have_v already_o intimate_v be_v to_o bring_v in_o and_o establish_v
the_o receive_n of_o apocryphal_a book_n into_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o opinion_n and_o practice_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n and_o destroy_v the_o certainty_n of_o every_o thing_n else_o so_o the_o jew_n upon_o all_o occasion_n object_n against_o it_o we_o have_v a_o witness_n beyond_o exception_n even_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o bring_v in_o the_o jew_n object_v against_o this_o doctrine_n 1525._o fortalitium_fw-la fidei_fw-la lugd._n anno_fw-la 1525._o and_o represent_v the_o unreasonableness_n and_o absurdity_n of_o it_o from_o fourteen_o several_a head_n of_o argument_n which_o i_o may_v not_o here_o represent_v to_o the_o reader_n because_o it_o will_v be_v too_o great_a a_o digression_n nor_o do_v i_o find_v this_o learned_a author_n who_o write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o attempt_n to_o answer_v these_o objection_n allege_v that_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o hebrew_n doctor_n the_o jew_n have_v so_o far_o abhor_v this_o doctrine_n etc._n decret_n gregor_n l._n v._o tit._n vi_o cap._n 13._o accepimus_fw-la autem_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o so_o far_o detest_a christian_n upon_o this_o account_n that_o they_o be_v wont_a when_o they_o make_v use_v of_o christian_a nurse_n to_o force_v they_o to_o throw_v away_o their_o milk_n for_o three_o day_n together_o before_o they_o give_v suck_v when_o it_o happen_v that_o at_o easter_n these_o nurse_n have_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o pope_n gregory_n complain_v of_o and_o decree_n upon_o it_o that_o christian_n shall_v not_o for_o the_o future_a be_v servant_n to_o the_o jew_n ikkarim_n j._n albo_n ikkarim_n and_o josephus_n albo_n dispute_v against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n very_o vigorous_o and_o so_o do_v many_o other_o 255._o v._o nizach_n vet_z p._n 255._o in_o their_o book_n against_o christian_n and_o many_o more_o testimony_n may_v be_v produce_v 11._o lipman_n nizachon_n p._n 11._o be_v not_o most_o of_o their_o book_n print_v in_o italy_n where_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a for_o they_o to_o be_v too_o plain_a and_o learned_a man_n do_v very_o well_o know_v that_o the_o passage_n in_o joseph_n albo_n against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v expunge_v in_o one_o edition_n of_o that_o author_n it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v that_o all_o the_o late_a jew_n be_v against_o this_o doctrine_n and_o that_o trypho_n the_o jew_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n have_v not_o object_v it_o against_o christian_n be_v only_o a_o argument_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o so_o old_a as_o that_o time_n in_o which_o they_o live_v this_o doctrine_n the_o jew_n be_v certain_a can_v be_v true_a because_o if_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o the_o falsity_n of_o this_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n nor_o can_v ever_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o we_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o be_v one_o great_a occasion_n of_o harden_v they_o against_o christianity_n and_o we_o be_v never_o like_a to_o see_v they_o come_v into_o the_o christian_a church_n till_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o it_o but_o then_o the_o practice_n annex_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o worship_v a_o creature_n be_v so_o dangerous_a that_o even_o they_o who_o own_o the_o doctrine_n confess_v if_o that_o be_v not_o true_a they_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o idolatry_n god_n give_v we_o a_o just_a sense_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o may_v not_o hereafter_o have_v beside_o our_o own_o sin_n which_o will_v be_v load_n great_a enough_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o great_a measure_n to_o answer_v for_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o fourteen_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n decima_fw-la quarta_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la infelix_fw-la exitus_fw-la seu_fw-la finis_fw-la eorm_n qui_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la oppugnant_fw-la bellarm._n l._n four_o c._n 17._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la july_n 27._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n if_o he_o be_v a_o unwise_a builder_n who_o pull_v down_o what_o he_o intend_v to_o build_v up_o then_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n though_o one_o of_o the_o master-builder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v one_o of_o the_o wise_a for_o he_o must_v shut_v his_o eye_n close_o who_o do_v not_o plain_o see_v that_o he_o frequent_o defeat_v his_o own_o design_n by_o give_v note_n which_o conclude_v that_o church_n to_o be_v false_a which_o he_o design_v to_o prove_v be_v the_o only_a true_a one_o such_o for_o instance_n be_v that_o which_o be_v now_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o shall_v in_o the_o sequel_n of_o this_o discourse_n be_v make_v appear_v the_o confutation_n of_o which_o can_v be_v difficult_a since_o i_o find_v nothing_o in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n that_o have_v so_o much_o as_o the_o show_n of_o a_o argument_n whereas_o some_o of_o his_o note_n be_v guard_v with_o a_o pretence_n at_o least_o of_o scripture_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n this_o be_v expose_v naked_a to_o the_o assault_n of_o its_o adversary_n without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o paper_n shield_n to_o protect_v it_o he_o tell_v we_o indeed_o many_o tragical_a story_n of_o unhappy_a death_n some_o of_o which_o be_v true_a some_o doubtful_a and_o other_o false_a some_o of_o person_n who_o be_v deadly_a enemy_n other_o of_o person_n who_o be_v zealous_a defender_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o have_v the_o story_n be_v all_o certain_o true_a and_o have_v the_o person_n who_o thus_o die_v be_v all_o of_o they_o implacable_a enemy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v unless_o he_o have_v also_o prove_v that_o when_o a_o person_n die_v a_o unnatural_a death_n the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v that_o that_o church_n of_o which_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o member_n be_v false_a and_o the_o church_n he_o oppose_v the_o only_a true_a one_o but_o how_o unwise_a soever_o he_o be_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o note_n he_o be_v so_o wise_a as_o not_o to_o attempt_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o unless_o the_o citation_n of_o this_o scripture_n may_v pass_v for_o a_o proof_n praise_v his_o people_n o_o you_o nation_n for_o he_o will_v avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o will_v render_v vengeance_n to_o his_o enemy_n 32.43_o enemy_n deut._n 32.43_o god_n will_v avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o servant_n therefore_o if_o a_o protestant_n die_v a_o uphappy_a death_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n but_o why_o do_v the_o cardinal_n send_v out_o this_o note_n so_o forlorn_a for_o a_o good_a reason_n because_o no_o defence_n can_v be_v find_v for_o it_o but_o why_o do_v he_o then_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o field_n because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v popular_a and_o may_v serve_v the_o cause_n better_o than_o another_o that_o be_v never_o so_o well_o fence_v for_o will_v not_o he_o dread_v to_o oppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n will_v set_v a_o note_n of_o vengeance_n upon_o those_o that_o do_v so_o will_v not_o he_o steadfast_o adhere_v to_o it_o who_o believe_v that_o that_o be_v a_o certain_a way_n to_o a_o happy_a death_n in_o short_a whosoever_o can_v be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o this_o note_n distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o church_n he_o will_v as_o much_o dread_a to_o turn_v protestant_n as_o he_o do_v to_o die_v the_o most_o prodigious_a sort_n of_o death_n but_o the_o mischief_n be_v that_o however_o serviceable_a this_o pretend_a note_n may_v be_v to_o they_o among_o weak_a and_o undiscerning_a person_n it_o will_v do_v there_o as_o much_o disservice_n among_o those_o who_o be_v judicious_a and_o able_a to_o examine_v it_o for_o when_o they_o shall_v once_o see_v what_o a_o palpable_a cheat_n it_o be_v and_o in_o case_n that_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o least_o reason_n of_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o pretend_v to_o it_o they_o will_v be_v thereby_o dispose_v to_o break_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n which_o contradict_v its_o own_o mark_n and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o some_o other_o church_n which_o have_v a_o better_a title_n to_o they_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v proceed_v in_o this_o method_n i._o i_o shall_v premise_v some_o thing_n as_o preparatory_a to_o what_o follow_v ii_o show_n that_o this_o can_v
potent_a commonwealth_n and_o if_o they_o have_v thrive_v only_o by_o their_o loss_n than_o they_o may_v plead_v miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o he_o make_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o well_o as_o success_n in_o warlike_a adventure_n he_o just_a mention_n a_o victory_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o over_o the_o lutheran_n 1547_o obtain_v as_o he_o say_v by_o a_o divine_a miracle_n i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v at_o the_o battle_n in_o mulberg_n where_o the_o force_n of_o john_n frederick_n elector_n of_o saxony_n be_v overthrow_v and_o himself_o take_v prisoner_n and_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v a_o considerable_a victory_n but_o i_o can_v understand_v the_o miracle_n of_o it_o but_o grant_v there_o be_v one_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o afterward_o charles_n himself_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o germany_n by_o a_o lutheran_n prince_n 10._o thuan._n lib._n 10._o and_o force_v to_o clamber_v over_o the_o alps_o by_o torchlight_n in_o a_o dark_a and_o rainy_a night_n among_o craggy_a rock_n and_o steep_a and_o slippery_a mountain_n carry_v in_o a_o horselitter_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o illness_n and_o when_o he_o have_v with_o great_a labour_n and_o hazard_v overcome_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o passage_n and_o be_v get_v pretty_a well_o out_o of_o danger_n the_o fright_a have_v make_v such_o impression_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o still_o conceit_a maurice_n be_v at_o his_o heel_n insomuch_o that_o when_o he_o be_v meet_v by_o the_o venetian_a ambassador_n with_o a_o body_n of_o horse_n send_v by_o the_o senate_n for_o the_o security_n of_o his_o person_n he_o be_v afraid_a of_o his_o own_o succour_n and_o can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v not_o some_o of_o the_o enemy_n troop_n he_o be_v indeed_o a_o gallant_a and_o generous_a prince_n adorn_v with_o many_o heroical_a virtue_n become_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o character_n he_o bear_v and_o have_v be_v often_o crown_v with_o a_o success_n answerable_a to_o the_o resolution_n and_o bravery_n of_o his_o mind_n but_o this_o hasty_a and_o lamentable_a flight_n lose_v he_o the_o fruit_n and_o do_v something_o eclipse_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o former_a victory_n and_o make_v he_o frequent_o complain_v of_o the_o change_n of_o his_o fortune_n and_o be_v by_o this_o and_o some_o other_o misadventure_n he_o meet_v with_o make_v sensible_a of_o the_o vanity_n and_o grow_v weary_a of_o the_o encumbrance_n of_o the_o world_n he_o resign_v the_o empire_n and_o his_o other_o dominion_n betwixt_o devotion_n and_o discontent_n and_o retire_v into_o a_o monastery_n in_o spain_n where_o he_o end_v his_o day_n and_o this_o i_o hope_v may_v prepare_v he_o for_o a_o eternal_a but_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o his_o temporal_a felicity_n nor_o can_v it_o ever_o from_o hence_o be_v prove_v that_o that_o of_o which_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o member_n be_v therefore_o the_o only_a true_a church_n or_o if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o the_o cardinal_n think_v when_o he_o take_v frederick_n it_o be_v certain_o otherwise_o when_o he_o run_v away_o from_o maurice_n and_o here_o i_o may_v conclude_v the_o examination_n of_o this_o note_n for_o since_o he_o attempt_v to_o prove_v it_o no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o a_o induction_n of_o particular_n if_o he_o have_v fail_v but_o in_o one_o instance_n as_o i_o have_v show_v he_o have_v do_v in_o many_o the_o whole_a argument_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n iii_o but_o to_o illustrate_v and_o confirm_v the_o matter_n far_o i_o shall_v bring_v some_o example_n of_o infidel_n and_o such_o as_o he_o esteem_v heretic_n who_o have_v be_v as_o prosperous_a and_o successful_a in_o the_o world_n and_o gain_v as_o signal_n victory_n as_o any_o of_o his_o catholic_n when_o vladislaus_n king_n of_o poland_n and_o hungary_n have_v conclude_v a_o peace_n with_o amurath_n the_o second_o and_o solemn_o confirm_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n 2o._o cuspinian_n in_o amurath_n 2o._o eugenius_n the_o four_o write_v he_o word_n that_o the_o league_n be_v make_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n without_o his_o consent_n can_v not_o be_v valid_a julian_n the_o legate_n absolve_v the_o king_n and_o the_o rest_n from_o the_o oath_n they_o have_v take_v and_o with_o many_o specious_a pretence_n persuade_v they_o to_o break_v with_o the_o turk_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o actual_a war._n amurath_n who_o be_v now_o withdraw_v into_o asia_n hear_v what_o have_v happen_v and_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o preparation_n that_o be_v make_v against_o he_o return_v unexpected_o with_o a_o mighty_a force_n and_o meet_v with_o the_o christian_n not_o far_o from_o varna_n where_o be_v begin_v a_o most_o bloody_a and_o obstinate_a fight_n which_o last_v as_o they_o report_v for_o three_o day_n with_o dubious_a success_n amurath_n at_o length_n upon_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o picture_n of_o our_o saviour_n on_o the_o cross_n that_o be_v paint_v in_o some_o of_o the_o christian_a banner_n passionate_o pray_v he_o to_o avenge_v the_o injury_n do_v to_o his_o name_n by_o those_o his_o faithless_a follower_n who_o have_v so_o late_o swear_v the_o league_n and_o so_o base_o and_o perfidious_o break_v it_o without_o any_o provocation_n in_o the_o end_n the_o christian_n be_v put_v to_o the_o rout_n vladislaus_n be_v slay_v the_o brave_a huniades_n hardly_o escape_v the_o treacherous_a legate_n who_o have_v draw_v they_o all_o into_o this_o distress_n be_v find_v upon_o the_o ground_n strip_v and_o wound_v and_o ready_a to_o expire_v many_o other_o great_a prelate_n and_o noble_n be_v kill_v on_o the_o place_n and_o a_o miserable_a slaughter_n make_v of_o about_o thirty_o thousand_o of_o the_o common_a men._n a_o remarkable_a instance_n to_o show_v that_o success_n do_v not_o always_o attend_v the_o papal_a benediction_n the_o unfortunate_a battle_n of_o mohatz_n be_v almost_o parallel_v to_o this_o in_o some_o circumstance_n 1._o fumee_n hist_o hungar._n book_n 1._o for_o solyman_n the_o turkish_a emperor_n protrept_v cuspin_n orat._n protrept_v invade_v hungary_n with_o a_o potent_a army_n paul_n tomoree_n first_o a_o soldier_n afterward_o a_o monk_n and_o then_o a_o archbishop_n be_v choose_v general_n against_o he_o under_z lewis_z the_o young_a king._n he_o hasty_o engage_v the_o enemy_n and_o be_v utter_o defeat_v himself_o slay_v in_o the_o field_n with_o many_o more_o eminent_a churchman_n and_o other_o person_n of_o the_o best_a quality_n his_o head_n be_v fix_v upon_o a_o pole_n and_o carry_v about_o the_o turkish_a army_n in_o a_o scornful_a and_o ridiculous_a kind_n of_o triumph_n lewis_n a_o prince_n of_o great_a hope_n scarce_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o flower_n of_o his_o youth_n be_v drown_v in_o a_o ditch_n and_o find_v stick_v in_o the_o mudd_n above_o a_o month_n after_o the_o fight_n i_o may_v add_v many_o more_o the_o like_a success_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n against_o those_o that_o have_v defend_v the_o church_n which_o the_o cardinal_n esteem_v the_o only_a true_a one._n but_o i_o think_v these_o two_o may_v suffice_v it_o be_v not_o difficult_a neither_o to_o collect_v numerous_a example_n of_o those_o he_o call_v heretic_n who_o have_v often_o put_v his_o catholic_n to_o the_o worst_a i_o shall_v name_v but_o one_o which_o for_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o good_a fortune_n may_v well_o serve_v instead_o of_o many_o and_o that_o be_v queen_n elizabeth_n who_o memory_n will_v always_o be_v honourable_a when_o envy_n and_o detraction_n have_v do_v their_o utmost_a at_o her_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n she_o find_v herself_o involve_v in_o war_n with_o two_o potent_a neighbour_n scotland_n and_o france_n she_o be_v destitute_a of_o ally_n abroad_o and_o not_o secure_v of_o the_o affection_n of_o her_o people_n at_o home_n the_o many_o and_o great_a revolution_n that_o have_v be_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n especial_o in_o the_o three_o forego_v reign_n have_v create_v such_o violent_a animosity_n and_o so_o very_o different_a interest_n in_o the_o nation_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o threaten_v her_o government_n with_o perpetual_a faction_n and_o disorder_n but_o all_o these_o difficulty_n that_o may_v be_v think_v insuperable_a be_v happy_o overcome_v or_o wise_o compose_v and_o her_o long_a reign_n of_o more_o than_o four_o and_o forty_o year_n pass_v over_o with_o such_o a_o constant_a series_n and_o tenor_n of_o success_n that_o my_o lord_n bacon_n who_o be_v intimate_o acquaint_v with_o the_o proceed_n of_o those_o time_n and_o admirable_o well_o qualify_v to_o judge_n have_v leave_v we_o a_o particular_a treatise_n of_o the_o felicity_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n 181._o see_v bacon_n rescuscitat_fw-la p._n 181._o among_o these_o i_o shall_v not_o now_o number_v the_o many_o escape_n she_o have_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o desperate_a villain_n who_o frequent_o attempt_v to_o assassinate_v her_o sacred_a person_n but_o
england_n to_o settle_v all_o and_o reconcile_v the_o nation_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n these_o thing_n be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o strada_n the_o jesuit_n after_o a_o narrative_a of_o this_o lamentable_a overthrow_n for_o fear_v it_o shall_v be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o his_o catholic_n cause_n as_o if_o almighty_a god_n have_v manifest_o favour_v the_o heretic_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o effectual_o confute_v this_o last_o note_n of_o bellarmin_n for_o when_o he_o have_v intimate_v what_o a_o unhappiness_n it_o be_v to_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o subject_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o good_a luck_n to_o be_v conquer_v as_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o spaniard_n have_v most_o love_o design_v etc._n neque_fw-la se_fw-la magis_fw-la pios_fw-la venditare_fw-la potuerint_fw-la quia_fw-la fortunatiores_fw-la fuêre_fw-la nisi_fw-la forte_fw-fr etc._n etc._n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o english_a can_v not_o therefore_o boast_v they_o be_v the_o more_o holy_a because_o they_o have_v be_v the_o more_o fortunate_a unless_o perhaps_o they_o shall_v think_v the_o misbelief_n of_o the_o saracen_n and_o turk_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o christian_a religion_n because_o in_o many_o successful_a engagement_n they_o have_v often_o defeat_v the_o force_n which_o the_o christian_n have_v with_o much_o labour_n bring_v together_o to_o this_o we_o willing_o agree_v and_o be_v glad_a that_o our_o cause_n do_v not_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o weak_a support_v but_o then_o if_o good_a success_n will_v not_o be_v allow_v to_o make_v for_o we_o when_o it_o be_v on_o our_o side_n there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n it_o shall_v be_v bring_v as_o a_o argument_n against_o we_o when_o it_o happen_v to_o be_v on_o they_o after_o this_o it_o will_v be_v superfluous_a to_o reckon_v up_o any_o more_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n felicity_n he_o that_o will_v undertake_v to_o recount_v they_o all_o must_v write_v the_o history_n of_o her_o reign_n and_o whoever_o be_v acquaint_v with_o that_o will_v find_v it_o true_a what_o anne_a d'est_fw-mi duchess_n of_o guise_n and_o nemours_n to_o who_o house_n the_o queen_n have_v be_v no_o friend_n be_v wont_v ingenuous_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o she_o be_v the_o most_o glorious_a and_o fortunate_a woman_n that_o ever_o sway_v a_o sceptre_n 129._o thuan._n lib._n 129._o this_o testimony_n which_o be_v give_v she_o by_o so_o great_a a_o person_n that_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v suspect_v of_o flattery_n be_v very_o considerable_a but_o the_o character_n that_o be_v bestow_v upon_o she_o by_o king_n james_n the_o first_o some_o time_n before_o he_o succeed_v she_o in_o the_o throne_n be_v great_a than_o this_o and_o more_o to_o be_v value_v because_o of_o the_o impartiality_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o royal_a author_n his_o word_n concern_v she_o be_v these_o there_o be_v a_o lawful_a qveen_n there_o in_o england_n present_o reign_v 147._o k._n james_n his_o work_n p._n 147._o who_o have_v so_o long_o with_o so_o great_a wisdom_n and_o felicity_n govern_v her_o kingdom_n as_o i_o must_v in_o true_a sincerity_n confess_v the_o like_a have_v not_o be_v read_v nor_o hear_v either_o in_o our_o time_n or_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n augustus_n the_o authority_n of_o so_o great_a and_o wise_a a_o prince_n may_v be_v enough_o not_o only_o to_o secure_v her_o memory_n from_o the_o malicious_a attempt_n of_o envious_a trifle_a pen_n but_o to_o put_v the_o happiness_n and_o prosperity_n of_o her_o government_n out_o of_o question_n and_o if_o bellarmin_n note_n of_o temporal_a felicity_n may_v be_v suffer_v to_o take_v place_n her_o example_n alone_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v urge_v with_o so_o much_o clamour_n must_v by_o consequence_n be_v retort_v upon_o his._n but_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v show_v that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o note_n that_o if_o it_o be_v the_o instance_n he_o have_v bring_v do_v not_o prove_v what_o he_o will_v have_v and_o that_o other_o may_v be_v plead_v as_o plausible_o for_o the_o contrary_a side_n and_o indeed_o any_o that_o consider_v it_o must_v needs_o wonder_v that_o the_o cardinal_n mind_n shall_v be_v so_o blind_v with_o worldly_a success_n and_o greatness_n or_o whatever_o it_o be_v as_o to_o cause_v he_o in_o the_o last_o place_n where_o we_o may_v have_v expect_v his_o great_a strength_n to_o put_v in_o such_o a_o frivolous_a note_n that_o may_v be_v easy_o turn_v a_o thousand_o several_a way_n that_o will_v fit_v the_o alcoran_n as_o well_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o at_o best_o make_v his_o church_n altogether_o as_o various_a and_o uncertain_a as_o the_o fortune_n of_o war._n i_o shall_v here_o have_v make_v a_o end_n but_o that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o a_o late_a writer_n that_o undertake_v to_o show_v the_o use_n and_o great_a moment_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n after_o other_o have_v 1._o pag._n 1._o to_o very_o good_a purpose_n lend_v his_o help_a hand_n to_o show_v we_o the_o city_n on_o a_o hill_n and_o have_v give_v we_o mark_n which_o one_o will_v think_v carry_v majesty_n in_o their_o face_n and_o a_o while_n after_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o pag._n 3._o dare_v not_o let_v they_o pass_v by_o we_o in_o their_o majestic_a train_n lest_o his_o reader_n with_o saba_n be_v queen_n shall_v be_v dazzle_a at_o the_o glory_n transport_v as_o she_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o life_n in_o she_o for_o say_v he_o they_o seem_v to_o a_o single_a not_o malignant_a eye_n even_o triumphant_a note_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n and_o then_o he_o lead_v they_o out_o in_o great_a state_n 4._o pag._n 4._o as_o he_o think_v as_o first_o let_v i_o have_v leave_n to_o reckon_v they_o ay_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n well_o then_o the_o name_n catholic_n how_o sacred_a to_o all_o those_o who_o own_o any_o of_o the_o three_o creed_n real_o and_o veritable_o the_o second_o its_o antiquity_n how_o indubitable_a and_o above_o all_o suspicion_n of_o novelty_n and_o so_o he_o go_v on_o and_o show_v they_o all_o in_o good_a order_n till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o three_o last_o and_o there_o he_o draw_v the_o curtain_n as_o if_o he_o be_v afraid_a any_o body_n shall_v see_v their_o majestic_a face_n 5._o pag._n 5._o to_o say_v nothing_o concern_v the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n and_o unhappy_a exit_fw-la of_o the_o church_n enemy_n here_o be_v two_o of_o the_o number_n which_o he_o do_v but_o just_a give_v we_o a_o little_a glimpse_n of_o and_o then_o pop_v they_o away_o present_o out_o of_o sight_n but_o poor_a temporal_a felicity_n be_v serve_v worst_a of_o all_o it_o have_v not_o the_o honour_n to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o name_v he_o have_v not_o bestow_v one_o syllable_n upon_o it_o though_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v as_o triumphant_a a_o note_n as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v cunning_o do_v to_o drop_v it_o for_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v aware_a that_o the_o heretic_n may_v sometime_o pretend_v to_o a_o share_n of_o it_o now_o when_o he_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o view_n of_o the_o majestic_a train_n as_o he_o think_v fit_a he_o conclude_v the_o paragraph_n with_o a_o artificial_a epiphonema_n adorn_v with_o a_o very_a pathetical_a ingemination_n these_o these_o be_v the_o note_n which_o like_o a_o bill_n in_o parliament_n deserve_v what_o a_o second_o read_v partur_fw-la montes_n o_o the_o virtue_n of_o butler_n rhetoric_n but_o real_o i_o be_o afraid_a that_o these_o these_o note_n these_o triumphant_a note_n as_o they_o be_v by_o he_o draw_v up_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v think_v worthy_a of_o a_o second_o read_v that_o they_o will_v certain_o be_v throw_v out_o of_o the_o house_n however_o i_o have_v look_v steady_o upon_o they_o more_o than_o once_o as_o they_o be_v represent_v by_o he_o and_o as_o they_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o cardinal_n be_v original_a and_o i_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v able_a to_o discover_v the_o majesty_n one_o will_v think_v they_o carry_v in_o their_o face_n but_o in_o my_o opinion_n some_o of_o their_o face_n will_v have_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_o if_o they_o have_v have_v any_o forehead_n i_o have_v careful_o behold_v their_o majestic_a train_n in_o its_o full_a length_n and_o yet_o never_o fall_v in_o a_o swoon_n with_o saba_n queen_n nay_o i_o have_v not_o have_v so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o qualm_n of_o fear_n or_o admiration_n upon_o i_o and_o my_o eye_n be_v so_o far_o
from_o be_v dazzle_v at_o the_o sight_n that_o they_o be_v no_o more_o affect_v than_o if_o i_o have_v look_v on_o a_o piece_n of_o green_a silk_n but_o i_o doubt_v he_o will_v censure_v they_o very_o hardly_o for_o it_o and_o think_v they_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o malignant_a cavaleerish_v eye_n i_o can_v help_v that_o but_o whatever_o eye_n they_o be_v since_o i_o have_v be_v able_a to_o hold_v they_o open_v so_o long_o against_o the_o glare_a imaginary_a splendour_n of_o these_o these_o triumphant_a note_n i_o will_v venture_v to_o draw_v out_o the_o whole_a train_n once_o more_o and_o give_v a_o little_a remark_n upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o pass_v by_o 1._o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n this_o be_v a_o note_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o usurp_v by_o every_o bold_a pretender_n but_o till_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v join_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o name_n alone_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o empty_a and_o insignificant_a sound_n 2._o antiquity_n i_o shall_v not_o here_o mention_v the_o antiquity_n of_o some_o error_n nor_o that_o there_o be_v many_o church_n in_o the_o world_n before_o there_o be_v any_o at_o rome_n but_o will_v free_o confess_v that_o that_o have_v be_v ancient_a enough_o if_o it_o have_v preserve_v that_o doctrine_n in_o its_o purity_n which_o it_o receive_v at_o the_o first_o but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o addition_n she_o have_v make_v unto_o that_o concern_v infallibility_n image_n purgatory_n and_o the_o like_a can_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v of_o ancient_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n nay_o many_o of_o their_o present_a tenant_n be_v never_o declare_v necessary_a till_o the_o last_o age_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v now_o constitute_v can_v be_v esteem_v no_o old_a than_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o be_v about_o forty_o year_n young_a than_o the_o reformation_n 3._o duration_n by_o this_o the_o cardinal_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o his_o true_a church_n have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o shall_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o christianity_n the_o first_o we_o deny_v the_o second_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o be_v sure_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v change_v already_o from_o what_o it_o be_v and_o we_o hope_v and_o believe_v that_o it_o will_v be_v change_v again_o from_o what_o it_o be_v and_o then_o what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o duration_n they_o boast_v of_o if_o they_o shall_v ever_o reform_v themselves_o from_o those_o error_n and_o abuse_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o among_o they_o as_o have_v be_v often_o attempt_v and_o a_o long_a time_n most_o earnest_o desire_v by_o many_o of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o impartial_a of_o their_o own_o communion_n so_o that_o grant_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n it_o will_v make_v against_o they_o both_o way_n for_o what_o be_v past_a we_o know_v what_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v by_o they_o and_o they_o can_v never_o be_v secure_v against_o other_o that_o may_v happen_v hereafter_o 4._o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v make_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o time_n be_v once_o that_o christ_n flock_n be_v a_o little_a flock_n 1.15_o act_n 1.15_o and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n together_o be_v but_o about_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o and_o afterward_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n have_v almost_o overspread_v the_o face_n of_o christendom_n insomuch_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v think_v to_o be_v against_o athanasius_n and_o athanasius_n against_o the_o whole_a world._n or_o shall_v we_o let_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o note_n they_o can_v gain_v but_o little_a by_o it_o for_o they_o be_v infinite_o exceed_v in_o multitude_n not_o only_o by_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n but_o by_o christian_n of_o other_o denomination_n 5._o succession_n of_o bishop_n how_o far_o this_o may_v be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n i_o need_v not_o dispute_v but_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n they_o of_o rome_n be_v wont_v to_o glory_n in_o be_v manifest_o false_a for_o beside_o the_o long_a vacance_n that_o have_v sometime_o happen_v and_o the_o many_o schism_n they_o have_v have_v when_o two_o or_o more_o have_v pretend_v to_o the_o papacy_n and_o no_o man_n can_v determine_v who_o have_v the_o right_n which_o must_v make_v it_o dubious_a the_o confess_v heretic_n that_o have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o infallible_a chair_n must_v quite_o cut_v off_o at_o least_o interrupt_v the_o succession_n or_o if_o they_o have_v it_o notwithstanding_o this_o or_o any_o other_o objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v plead_v the_o same_o 6._o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v a_o good_a note_n indeed_o if_o they_o mean_v the_o true_o primitive_a church_n for_o that_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o then_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o affirm_v that_o their_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n their_o half-communion_n their_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o now_o receive_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n and_o belief_n of_o that_o primitive_a church_n 7._o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n of_o this_o they_o be_v continual_o make_v their_o brag_v but_o the_o many_o and_o violent_a contention_n that_o have_v often_o be_v betwixt_o the_o several_a pretender_n to_o the_o papal_a dignity_n and_o the_o endless_a feud_n and_o animosity_n that_o be_v keep_v up_o among_o they_o about_o many_o controvert_v point_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o their_o church_n have_v be_v rend_v and_o tear_v with_o faction_n and_o intestine_a division_n as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o society_n or_o if_o they_o be_v as_o firm_o unite_v as_o they_o pretend_v it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o other_o combination_n of_o man_n have_v be_v in_o know_v and_o wicked_a error_n 8._o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n for_o they_o general_o assert_v as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v here_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n maintain_v nothing_o that_o be_v false_a either_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v this_o there_o may_v be_v some_o reason_n indeed_o that_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v esteem_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n as_o she_o have_v be_v wont_a of_o late_a to_o style_v herself_o but_o since_o the_o power_n of_o depose_v prince_n have_v be_v open_o assume_v and_o frequent_o practise_v and_o never_o yet_o condemn_v by_o any_o either_o pope_n or_o council_n since_o the_o doctrine_n of_o aequivocation_n and_o many_o other_o absurd_a and_o impious_a opinion_n be_v teach_v by_o their_o casuist_n and_o make_v use_v of_o by_o their_o confessor_n in_o direct_v the_o conscience_n of_o their_o penitent_n and_o since_o these_o and_o many_o more_o very_a dangerous_a error_n do_v not_o only_o escape_v without_o a_o censure_n but_o be_v approve_v of_o and_o encourage_v by_o their_o governor_n i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o they_o and_o their_o church_n can_v possible_o be_v excuse_v from_o the_o gild_n of_o they_o 9_o the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n here_o we_o be_v tell_v of_o the_o wonderful_a success_n they_o have_v have_v in_o the_o propagation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o conversion_n that_o have_v be_v make_v of_o whole_a nation_n and_o suppose_v it_o be_v as_o they_o say_v yet_o heresy_n and_o infidelity_n have_v often_o have_v as_o great_a and_o swift_a a_o progress_n in_o the_o world_n as_o any_o that_o their_o doctrine_n can_v boast_v of_o and_o consider_v the_o pravity_n and_o corruption_n of_o human_a nature_n it_o be_v not_o strange_a that_o the_o most_o gross_a and_o pernicious_a error_n shall_v be_v more_o ready_o receive_v and_o spread_v themselves_o fast_o than_o the_o most_o divine_a and_o sacred_a truth_n 10._o holiness_n of_o life_n this_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o real_a commendation_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o i_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o rob_v they_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o but_o than_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o meet_v philosopher_n and_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n and_o many_o of_o those_o who_o they_o account_v modern_a heretic_n have_v be_v of_o a_o very_a strict_a and_o unblamable_a conversation_n and_o divers_a of_o their_o pope_n and_o other_o ecclesiastic_n of_o the_o great_a eminency_n of_o place_n have_v be_v very_o infamous_a for_o all_o sort_n of_o wickedness_n and_o debauchery_n and_o their_o very_a religious_a order_n have_v be_v often_o complain_v of_o for_o the_o neglect_n of_o their_o discipline_n and_o looseness_n of_o their_o life_n as_o be_v abundant_o testify_v by_o their_o